![](images/minus.gif)
Text -- 1 Corinthians 11:5-34 (NET)
![](images/arrow_open.gif)
![](images/advanced.gif)
![](images/advanced.gif)
![](images/advanced.gif)
Names, People and Places, Dictionary Themes and Topics
![](images/arrow_open.gif)
![](images/information.gif)
![](images/cmt_minus_head.gif)
collapse allCommentary -- Word/Phrase Notes (per phrase)
Robertson -> 1Co 11:5; 1Co 11:5; 1Co 11:6; 1Co 11:6; 1Co 11:6; 1Co 11:6; 1Co 11:7; 1Co 11:7; 1Co 11:9; 1Co 11:10; 1Co 11:10; 1Co 11:10; 1Co 11:11; 1Co 11:11; 1Co 11:12; 1Co 11:12; 1Co 11:13; 1Co 11:14; 1Co 11:15; 1Co 11:15; 1Co 11:16; 1Co 11:16; 1Co 11:17; 1Co 11:17; 1Co 11:17; 1Co 11:17; 1Co 11:18; 1Co 11:18; 1Co 11:18; 1Co 11:18; 1Co 11:19; 1Co 11:19; 1Co 11:19; 1Co 11:20; 1Co 11:21; 1Co 11:21; 1Co 11:21; 1Co 11:22; 1Co 11:22; 1Co 11:22; 1Co 11:23; 1Co 11:23; 1Co 11:24; 1Co 11:24; 1Co 11:24; 1Co 11:25; 1Co 11:25; 1Co 11:25; 1Co 11:26; 1Co 11:27; 1Co 11:27; 1Co 11:28; 1Co 11:29; 1Co 11:30; 1Co 11:31; 1Co 11:32; 1Co 11:32; 1Co 11:33; 1Co 11:34; 1Co 11:34; 1Co 11:34; 1Co 11:34
Robertson: 1Co 11:5 - -- With her head unveiled ( akatakaluptōi tēi kephalēi ).
Associative instrumental case of manner and the predicative adjective (compound adjectiv...
With her head unveiled (
Associative instrumental case of manner and the predicative adjective (compound adjective and feminine form same as masculine), "with the head unveiled."Probably some of the women had violated this custom. "Amongst Greeks only the
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: 1Co 11:5 - -- One and the same thing as if she were shaven ( hen kai to auto tēi exurēmenēi ).
Literally, "One and the same thing with the one shaven"(associ...
One and the same thing as if she were shaven (
Literally, "One and the same thing with the one shaven"(associative instrumental case again, Robertson, Grammar , p. 530). Perfect passive articular participle of the verb
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: 1Co 11:6 - -- Let her also be shorn ( kai keirasthō ).
Aorist middle imperative of keirō , to shear (as sheep). Let her cut her hair close. A single act by the...
Let her also be shorn (
Aorist middle imperative of
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: 1Co 11:6 - -- If it is a shame ( ei de aischron ).
Condition of first class assumed to be true. Aischron is old adjective from aischos , bareness, disgrace. Clea...
If it is a shame (
Condition of first class assumed to be true.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: 1Co 11:6 - -- To be shorn or shaven ( to keirasthai kai xurasthai ).
Articular infinitives subject of copula estin understood, keirasthai first aorist middle, ...
To be shorn or shaven (
Articular infinitives subject of copula
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: 1Co 11:6 - -- Let her be veiled ( katakaluptesthō ).
Present middle imperative of old compound katȧkaluptō , here alone in N.T. Let her cover up herself with...
Let her be veiled (
Present middle imperative of old compound
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: 1Co 11:7 - -- The image and glory of God ( eikōn kai doxa theou ).
Anarthrous substantives, but definite. Reference to Gen 1:27 whereby man is made directly in t...
The image and glory of God (
Anarthrous substantives, but definite. Reference to Gen 1:27 whereby man is made directly in the image (
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: 1Co 11:7 - -- The glory of the man ( doxa andros ).
Anarthrous also, man’ s glory. In Genesis 2:26 the lxx has anthrōpos (Greek word for both male and fem...
The glory of the man (
Anarthrous also, man’ s glory. In Genesis 2:26 the lxx has
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: 1Co 11:9 - -- For the woman ( dia tēn gunaika ).
Because of (dia with accusative case) the woman. The record in Genesis gives the man (anēr ) as the origin ...
For the woman (
Because of (
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: 1Co 11:10 - -- Ought ( opheilei ).
Moral obligation therefore (dia touto , rests on woman in the matter of dress that does not (ouk opheilei in 1Co 11:7) rest on ...
Ought (
Moral obligation therefore (
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: 1Co 11:10 - -- To have a sign of authority ( exousian echein ).
He means sēmeion exousias (symbol of authority) by exousian , but it is the sign of authority of...
To have a sign of authority (
He means
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: 1Co 11:10 - -- Because of the angels ( dia tous aggelous ).
This startling phrase has caused all kinds of conjecture which may be dismissed. It is not preachers tha...
Because of the angels (
This startling phrase has caused all kinds of conjecture which may be dismissed. It is not preachers that Paul has in mind, nor evil angels who could be tempted (Gen 6:1.), but angels present in worship (cf. 1Co 4:9; Psa 138:1) who would be shocked at the conduct of the women since the angels themselves veil their faces before Jehovah (Isa 6:2).
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: 1Co 11:11 - -- Howbeit ( plēn ).
This adversative clause limits the preceding statement. Each sex is incomplete without (chōris , apart from, with the ablative ...
Howbeit (
This adversative clause limits the preceding statement. Each sex is incomplete without (
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: 1Co 11:11 - -- In the Lord ( en Kuriōi ).
In the sphere of the Lord, where Paul finds the solution of all problems.
In the Lord (
In the sphere of the Lord, where Paul finds the solution of all problems.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: 1Co 11:12 - -- - by ( dia ).
Ever since the first creation man has come into existence by means of (dia with genitive) the woman. The glory and dignity of motherh...
- by (
Ever since the first creation man has come into existence by means of (
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: 1Co 11:13 - -- Is it seemly? ( prepon estiṉ ).
Periphrastic present indicative rather than prepei . See note on Mat 3:15. Paul appeals to the sense of propriety a...
Is it seemly? (
Periphrastic present indicative rather than
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: 1Co 11:14 - -- Nature itself ( hē phusis autē ).
He reenforces the appeal to custom by the appeal to nature in a question that expects the affirmative answer (o...
Nature itself (
He reenforces the appeal to custom by the appeal to nature in a question that expects the affirmative answer (
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: 1Co 11:15 - -- Have long hair ( komāi ).
Present active subjunctive of komaō (from komē , hair), old verb, same contraction (̇aēîāi ) as the indicat...
Have long hair (
Present active subjunctive of
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: 1Co 11:15 - -- For a covering ( anti peribolaiou ).
Old word from periballō to fling around, as a mantle (Heb 1:12) or a covering or veil as here. It is not in ...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: 1Co 11:16 - -- Contentious ( philoneikos ).
Old adjective (philos , neikos ), fond of strife. Only here in N.T. If he only existed in this instance, the disputati...
Contentious (
Old adjective (
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: 1Co 11:16 - -- Custom ( sunētheian ).
Old word from sunēthēs (sun , ēthos ), like Latin consuetudo , intercourse, intimacy. In N.T. only here and 1Co ...
Custom (
Old word from
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: 1Co 11:17 - -- This ( touto ).
Probably the preceding one about the head-dress of women, and transition to what follows.
This (
Probably the preceding one about the head-dress of women, and transition to what follows.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: 1Co 11:17 - -- For the better ( eis to kreisson ).
Neuter articular comparative of kratus , but used as comparative of kalos , good. Attic form kreitton .
For the better (
Neuter articular comparative of
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: 1Co 11:17 - -- For the worse ( eis to hēsson ).
Old comparative from hēka , softly, used as comparative of kakos , bad. In N.T. only here and 2Co 12:15.
For the worse (
Old comparative from
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: 1Co 11:18 - -- First of all ( prōton men ).
There is no antithesis (deuteron de , secondly, or epeita de , in the next place) expressed. This is the primary reaso...
First of all (
There is no antithesis (
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: 1Co 11:18 - -- When ye come together in the church ( sunerchomenōn hēmōn en ekklēsiāi ).
Genitive absolute. Here ekklēsia has the literal meaning of a...
When ye come together in the church (
Genitive absolute. Here
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: 1Co 11:18 - -- Divisions ( schismata ).
Accusative of general reference with the infinitive huparchein in indirect discourse. Old word for cleft, rent, from schiz...
Divisions (
Accusative of general reference with the infinitive
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: 1Co 11:18 - -- Partly ( meros ti ).
Accusative of extent (to some part) like panta in 1Co 10:33. He could have said ek merous as in 1Co 13:9. The rumours of str...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: 1Co 11:19 - -- Must be ( dei einai ).
Since moral conditions are so bad among you (cf. chapters 1 to 6). Cf. Mat 18:7.
Must be (
Since moral conditions are so bad among you (cf. chapters 1 to 6). Cf. Mat 18:7.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: 1Co 11:19 - -- Heresies ( haireseis ).
The schisms naturally become factions or parties. Cf. strifes (erides ) in 1Co 1:11. See Act 15:5 for haireseis , a choos...
Heresies (
The schisms naturally become factions or parties. Cf. strifes (
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: 1Co 11:19 - -- That ( hina ).
God’ s purpose in these factions makes the proved ones (hoi dokimoi ) become manifest (phaneroi ). "These haireseis are a...
That (
God’ s purpose in these factions makes the proved ones (
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: 1Co 11:20 - -- To eat the Lord’ s Supper ( Kuriakon deipnon phagein ).
Kuriakos , adjective from Kurios , belonging to or pertaining to the Lord, is not just a...
To eat the Lord’ s Supper (
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: 1Co 11:21 - -- Taketh before ( prolambanei ).
Before others. Old verb to take before others. It was conduct like this that led to the complete separation between th...
Taketh before (
Before others. Old verb to take before others. It was conduct like this that led to the complete separation between the Love-feast and the Lord’ s Supper. It was not even a common meal together (
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: 1Co 11:21 - -- This one is hungry ( hos de peināi ).
Demonstrative hos . Nothing is left for him at the love-feast.
This one is hungry (
Demonstrative
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: 1Co 11:21 - -- Another is drunken ( hos de methuei ).
Such disgusting conduct was considered shameful in heathen club suppers. "Hungry poor meeting intoxicated rich...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: 1Co 11:22 - -- What? Have ye not houses? ( Mē gar oikias ouk echete̱ )
The double negative (mē̇̇ouk ) in the single question is like the idiom in 1Co 9:4. w...
What? Have ye not houses? (
The double negative (
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: 1Co 11:22 - -- That have not ( tous mē echontas ).
Not those without houses, but those who have nothing, "the have-nots"(Findlay) like 2Co 8:12, in contrast with ...
That have not (
Not those without houses, but those who have nothing, "the have-nots"(Findlay) like 2Co 8:12, in contrast with
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: 1Co 11:22 - -- What shall I say to you? ( ti eipō humiṉ )
Deliberative subjunctive that well expresses Paul’ s bewilderment.
What shall I say to you? (
Deliberative subjunctive that well expresses Paul’ s bewilderment.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: 1Co 11:23 - -- For I received of the Lord ( ego gar parelabon apo tou Kuriou ).
Direct claim to revelation from the Lord Jesus on the origin of the Lord’ s Sup...
For I received of the Lord (
Direct claim to revelation from the Lord Jesus on the origin of the Lord’ s Supper. Luke’ s account (Luk 22:17-20) is almost identical with this one. He could easily have read 1 Corinthians before he wrote his Gospel. See note on 1Co 15:3 for use of both
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: 1Co 11:23 - -- He was betrayed ( paredideto ).
Imperfect passive indicative (irregular form for paredidoto , Robertson, Grammar , p. 340). Same verb as paredōka ...
He was betrayed (
Imperfect passive indicative (irregular form for
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: 1Co 11:24 - -- When he had given thanks ( eucharistēsas ).
First aorist active participle of eucharisteō from which word our word Eucharist comes, common late...
When he had given thanks (
First aorist active participle of
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: 1Co 11:24 - -- Which is for you ( to huper humōn ).
Klōmenon (broken) of the Textus Receptus (King James Version) is clearly not genuine. Luke (Luk 22:19) has...
Which is for you (
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: 1Co 11:24 - -- In remembrance of me ( eis tēn emēn anamnēsin ).
The objective use of the possessive pronoun emēn . Not my remembrance of you, but your remem...
In remembrance of me (
The objective use of the possessive pronoun
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: 1Co 11:25 - -- After supper ( meta to deipnēsai ).
Meta and the articular aorist active infinitive, "after the dining"(or the supping) as in Luk 22:20.
After supper (
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: 1Co 11:25 - -- The new covenant ( hē kainē diathēkē ).
For diathēkē see note on Mat 26:28. For kainos see Luk 5:38 and note on Luk 22:20. The positi...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: 1Co 11:25 - -- As oft as ye drink it ( hosakis an pinēte ).
Usual construction for general temporal clause of repetition (an and the present subjunctive with ho...
As oft as ye drink it (
Usual construction for general temporal clause of repetition (
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: 1Co 11:26 - -- Till he come ( achri hou elthēi ).
Common idiom (with or without an ) with the aorist subjunctive for future time (Robertson, Grammar , p. 975). ...
Till he come (
Common idiom (with or without
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: 1Co 11:27 - -- Unworthily ( anaxiōs ).
Old adverb, only here in N.T., not genuine in 1Co 11:29. Paul defines his meaning in 1Co 11:29. He does not say or imply th...
Unworthily (
Old adverb, only here in N.T., not genuine in 1Co 11:29. Paul defines his meaning in 1Co 11:29. He does not say or imply that we ourselves must be "worthy"(
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: 1Co 11:27 - -- Shall be guilty ( enochos estai ).
Shall be held guilty as in Mat 5:21. which see. Shall be guilty of a crime committed against the body and blood of...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: 1Co 11:28 - -- Let a man prove himself ( dokimazetō anthrōpos heauton ).
Test himself as he would a piece of metal to see if genuine. Such examination of one...
Let a man prove himself (
Test himself as he would a piece of metal to see if genuine. Such examination of one’ s motives would have made impossible the disgraceful scenes in 1Co 11:20.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: 1Co 11:29 - -- If he discern not the body ( mē diakrinōn to sōma ).
So-called conditional use of the participle, "not judging the body."Thus he eats and drink...
If he discern not the body (
So-called conditional use of the participle, "not judging the body."Thus he eats and drinks judgment (
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: 1Co 11:30 - -- And not a few sleep ( kai koimōntai hikanoi ).
Sufficient number (hikanoi ) are already asleep in death because of their desecration of the Lord...
And not a few sleep (
Sufficient number (
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: 1Co 11:31 - -- But if we discerned ourselves ( ei de heautous diekrinomen ).
This condition of the second class, determined as unfulfilled, assumes that they had no...
But if we discerned ourselves (
This condition of the second class, determined as unfulfilled, assumes that they had not been judging themselves discriminatingly, else they would not be judged (
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: 1Co 11:32 - -- Ye are chastened of the Lord ( hupo tou Kuriou paideuometha ).
On this sense of paideuō , from pais , child, to train a child (Act 7:22), to discip...
Ye are chastened of the Lord (
On this sense of
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: 1Co 11:32 - -- With the world ( sun tōi kosmōi ).
Along with the world. Afflictions are meant to separate us from the doom of the wicked world. Final use of hin...
With the world (
Along with the world. Afflictions are meant to separate us from the doom of the wicked world. Final use of
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: 1Co 11:33 - -- Wait one for another ( allēlous ekdechesthe ).
As in Joh 5:3; Act 17:16. That is common courtesy. Wait in turn. Vulgate has invicem expectate .
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: 1Co 11:34 - -- The rest ( ta loipa ).
He has found much fault with this church, but he has not told all.
The rest (
He has found much fault with this church, but he has not told all.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: 1Co 11:34 - -- I will set in order ( diataxomai ).
Not even Timothy and Titus can do it all.
I will set in order (
Not even Timothy and Titus can do it all.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: 1Co 11:34 - -- Whensoever I come ( hōs an elthō ).
Common idiom for temporal clause of future time (conjunction like hōs with an and aorist subjunctive el...
Whensoever I come (
Common idiom for temporal clause of future time (conjunction like
Vincent -> 1Co 11:5; 1Co 11:5; 1Co 11:6; 1Co 11:7; 1Co 11:10; 1Co 11:10; 1Co 11:14; 1Co 11:16; 1Co 11:17; 1Co 11:18; 1Co 11:19; 1Co 11:20; 1Co 11:20; 1Co 11:21; 1Co 11:22; 1Co 11:23; 1Co 11:23; 1Co 11:23; 1Co 11:24; 1Co 11:24; 1Co 11:24; 1Co 11:24; 1Co 11:25; 1Co 11:25; 1Co 11:26; 1Co 11:27; 1Co 11:27; 1Co 11:28; 1Co 11:29; 1Co 11:29; 1Co 11:29; 1Co 11:29; 1Co 11:30; 1Co 11:30; 1Co 11:31; 1Co 11:31; 1Co 11:32; 1Co 11:32; 1Co 11:33; 1Co 11:34
Vincent: 1Co 11:5 - -- Her head uncovered
Rev., unveiled . The Greek women rarely appeared in public, but lived in strict seclusion. Unmarried women never quitted thei...
Her head uncovered
Rev., unveiled . The Greek women rarely appeared in public, but lived in strict seclusion. Unmarried women never quitted their apartments, except on occasions of festal processions, either as spectators or participants. Even after marriage they were largely confined to the
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Vincent: 1Co 11:5 - -- All one as if she were shaven
Which would be a sign either of grief or of disgrace. The cutting off of the hair is used by Isaiah as a figure of ...
All one as if she were shaven
Which would be a sign either of grief or of disgrace. The cutting off of the hair is used by Isaiah as a figure of the entire destruction of a people by divine retribution. Isa 7:20 Among the Jews a woman convicted of adultery had her hair shorn, with the formula: " Because thou hast departed from the manner of the daughters of Israel, who go with their head covered, therefore that has befallen thee which thou hast chosen." According to Tacitus, among the Germans an adulteress was driven from her husband's house with her head shaved; and the Justinian code prescribed this penalty for an adulteress, whom, at the expiration of two years, her husband refused to receive again. Paul means that a woman praying or prophesying uncovered puts herself in public opinion on a level with a courtesan.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Vincent: 1Co 11:6 - -- Shorn or shaven ( κείρασθαι ἢ ξυρᾶσθαι )
To have the hair cut close, or to be entirely shaved as with a razor.
Shorn or shaven (
To have the hair cut close, or to be entirely shaved as with a razor.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Vincent: 1Co 11:7 - -- Image and glory ( εἰκὼν καὶ δόξα )
For image , see on Rev 13:14. Man represents God's authority by his position as the ruler...
Image and glory (
For image , see on Rev 13:14. Man represents God's authority by his position as the ruler of the woman. In the case of the woman, the word image is omitted, although she, like the man, is the image of God. Paul is expounding the relation of the woman, not to God, but to man.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Vincent: 1Co 11:10 - -- Power on her head ( ἐξουσίαν )
Not in the primary sense of liberty or permission , but authority . Used here of the symbol of...
Power on her head (
Not in the primary sense of liberty or permission , but authority . Used here of the symbol of power, i.e., the covering upon the head as a sign of her husband's authority. So Rev., a sign of authority .
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Vincent: 1Co 11:10 - -- Because of the angels
The holy angels, who were supposed by both the Jewish and the early Christian Church to be present in worshipping assemblie...
Because of the angels
The holy angels, who were supposed by both the Jewish and the early Christian Church to be present in worshipping assemblies. More, however, seems to be meant than " to avoid exciting disapproval among them." The key-note of Paul's thought is subordination according to the original divine order. Woman best asserts her spiritual equality before God, not by unsexing herself, but by recognizing her true position and fulfilling its claims, even as do the angels, who are ministering as well as worshipping spirits (Heb 1:4). She is to fall in obediently with that divine economy of which she forms a part with the angels, and not to break the divine harmony, which especially asserts itself in worship, where the angelic ministers mingle with the earthly worshippers; nor to ignore the example of the holy ones who keep their first estate, and serve in the heavenly sanctuary.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Vincent: 1Co 11:14 - -- Nature ( φύσις )
The recognized constitution of things. In this case the natural distinction of the woman's long hair.
Nature (
The recognized constitution of things. In this case the natural distinction of the woman's long hair.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Vincent: 1Co 11:16 - -- Custom
Not the custom of contentiousness, but that of women speaking unveiled. The testimonies of Tertullian and Chrysostom show that these injun...
Custom
Not the custom of contentiousness, but that of women speaking unveiled. The testimonies of Tertullian and Chrysostom show that these injunctions of Paul prevailed in the churches. In the sculptures of the catacombs the women have a close-fitting head-dress, while the men have the hair short.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Vincent: 1Co 11:17 - -- I declare ( παραγγέλλω )
Wrong. It means in the New Testament only command . See on Luk 5:14; see on Act 1:4.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Vincent: 1Co 11:18 - -- In the church ( ἐν ἐκκλησίᾳ )
See on Mat 16:18. Not the church edifice , a meaning which the word never has in the New Testame...
In the church (
See on Mat 16:18. Not the church edifice , a meaning which the word never has in the New Testament, and which appears first in patristic writings. The marginal rendering of the Rev. is better: in congregation .
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Vincent: 1Co 11:19 - -- Heresies ( αἱρἐσεις )
See on 2Pe 2:1. In Paul only here and Gal 5:20. Better, parties or factions , as the result of the divisions...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
This is not (
Rev., correctly, it is not possible .
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Vincent: 1Co 11:20 - -- The Lord's Supper ( κυριακὸν δεῖπνον )
The emphasis is on Lord's . Δεῖπνον supper , represented the principal meal ...
The Lord's Supper (
The emphasis is on Lord's .
Indications of the blending of the eucharistic celebration with a common meal are found here, Act 2:42; Act 20:7, and more obscurely, Act 27:35.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Taketh before other
Not waiting for the coming of the poor to participate.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Vincent: 1Co 11:22 - -- Them that have not
Not, that have not houses , but absolutely, the poor . In thus shaming their poorer comrades they imitated the heathen. Xe...
Them that have not
Not, that have not houses , but absolutely, the poor . In thus shaming their poorer comrades they imitated the heathen. Xenophon relates of Socrates that, at feasts of contribution, where some brought much and others little, Socrates bade his attendant either to place each small contribution on the table for the common use, or else to distribute his share of the same to each. And so those who had brought much were ashamed not to partake of that which was placed for general use, and not, in return, to place their own stock on the table (" Memorabilia," iii., 14, 1).
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Vincent: 1Co 11:23 - -- I received ( ἐγὼ παρέλαβον )
I is emphatic, giving the weight of personal authority to the statement. The question whether Pa...
I received (
I is emphatic, giving the weight of personal authority to the statement. The question whether Paul means that he received directly from Christ, or mediately through the apostles or tradition, turns on a difference between two prepositions. Strictly,
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Vincent: 1Co 11:23 - -- Also ( καὶ )
Important as expressing the identity of the account of Jesus with his own.
Also (
Important as expressing the identity of the account of Jesus with his own.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Vincent: 1Co 11:23 - -- He was betrayed ( παρεδίδετο )
Imperfect tense, and very graphic. He was being betrayed . He instituted the Eucharist while Hi...
He was betrayed (
Imperfect tense, and very graphic. He was being betrayed . He instituted the Eucharist while His betrayal was going on .
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Vincent: 1Co 11:24 - -- Had given thanks ( εὐχαριστής )
Eucharistesas . Hence in post-apostolic and patristic writers, Eucharist was the technical term ...
Had given thanks (
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Vincent: 1Co 11:24 - -- Brake
Bengel says: " The very mention of the breaking involves distribution and refutes the Corinthian plan - every man his own" (1Co 11:21).
Brake
Bengel says: " The very mention of the breaking involves distribution and refutes the Corinthian plan - every man his own" (1Co 11:21).
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Do (
Be doing or continue doing .
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Vincent: 1Co 11:24 - -- In remembrance ( εἰς )
Strictly, for or with a view to , denoting purpose. These words do not occur in Matthew and Mark. Paul's acc...
In remembrance (
Strictly, for or with a view to , denoting purpose. These words do not occur in Matthew and Mark. Paul's account agrees with Luke's. Remembrance implies Christ's bodily absence in the future.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Vincent: 1Co 11:25 - -- After supper
Only Luke records this detail. It is added to mark the distinction between the Lord's Supper and the ordinary meal.
After supper
Only Luke records this detail. It is added to mark the distinction between the Lord's Supper and the ordinary meal.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Vincent: 1Co 11:25 - -- Testament ( διαθήκη )
Rev., correctly, covenant . See on Mat 26:28. The Hebrew word is derived from a verb meaning to cut . Hence th...
Testament (
Rev., correctly, covenant . See on Mat 26:28. The Hebrew word is derived from a verb meaning to cut . Hence the connection of dividing the victims with the ratification of a covenant. See Gen 15:9-18. A similar usage appears in the Homeric phrase
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Vincent: 1Co 11:26 - -- Ye do shew ( καταγγέλλετε )
Rev., better, proclaim . It is more than represent or signify . The Lord's death is preached in t...
Ye do shew (
Rev., better, proclaim . It is more than represent or signify . The Lord's death is preached in the celebration of the Eucharist. Compare Exo 13:8, thou shalt shew . In the Jewish passover the word Haggadah denoted the historical explanation of the meaning of the passover rites given by the father to the son. Dr. Schaff says of the eucharistic service of the apostolic age: " The fourteenth chapter of first Corinthians makes the impression - to use an American phrase - of a religions meeting thrown open . Everybody who had a spiritual gift, whether it was the gift of tongues, of interpretation, of prophecy, or of sober, didactic teaching, had a right to speak, to pray, and to sing. Even women exercised their gifts" (" Introduction to the Didache" ). See, further, on 1Co 14:33.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Vincent: 1Co 11:27 - -- Unworthily ( ἀναξίως )
Defined by " not discerning the Lord's body," 1Co 11:29.
Unworthily (
Defined by " not discerning the Lord's body," 1Co 11:29.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
So
After self-examination and consequent knowledge of his spiritual state.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Vincent: 1Co 11:29 - -- Damnation ( κρῖμα )
See on Mar 16:16; see on Joh 9:39. This false and horrible rendering has destroyed the peace of more sincere and earne...
Damnation (
See on Mar 16:16; see on Joh 9:39. This false and horrible rendering has destroyed the peace of more sincere and earnest souls than any other misread passage in the New Testament. It has kept hundreds from the Lord's table.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Vincent: 1Co 11:29 - -- Not discerning ( μὴ διακρίνων )
Rev., if he discern not , bringing out the conditional force of the negative particle. The ...
Not discerning (
Rev., if he discern not , bringing out the conditional force of the negative particle. The verb primarily means to separate , and hence to make a distinction , discriminate . Rev., in margin, discriminating . Such also is the primary meaning of discern ( discernere to part or separate ), so that discerning implies a mental act of discriminating between different things. So Bacon: " Nothing more variable than voices, yet men can likewise discern these personally." This sense has possibly become a little obscured in popular usage. From this the transition is easy and natural to the sense of doubting , disputing , judging , all of these involving the recognition of differences. The object of the discrimination here referred to, may, I think, be regarded as complex. After Paul's words (1Co 11:20, 1Co 11:22), about the degradation of the Lord's Supper, the discrimination between the Lord's body and common food may naturally be contemplated; but further, such discernment of the peculiar significance and sacredness of the Lord's body as shall make him shrink from profanation and shall stimulate him to penitence and faith.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Vincent: 1Co 11:29 - -- The Lord's body
Omit Lord's and read the body . This adds force to discerning .
The Lord's body
Omit Lord's and read the body . This adds force to discerning .
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Vincent: 1Co 11:30 - -- Weak and sickly
Physical visitations on account of profanation of the Lord's table.
Weak and sickly
Physical visitations on account of profanation of the Lord's table.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Vincent: 1Co 11:30 - -- Many sleep ( κοιμῶνται ἱκανοί )
The word for many means, primarily, adequate , sufficient . See on Rom 15:23. Rev., not...
Many sleep (
The word for many means, primarily, adequate , sufficient . See on Rom 15:23. Rev., not a few hardly expresses the ominous shading of the word: quite enough have died. Sleep . Better, are sleeping . Here simply as a synonym for are dead , without the peculiar restful sense which christian sentiment so commonly conveys into it. See on Act 7:60; see on 2Pe 3:4.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Vincent: 1Co 11:31 - -- We would judge ( διεκρίνομεν )
An illustration of the confusion in rendering referred to under 1Co 11:29. This is the same word as ...
We would judge (
An illustration of the confusion in rendering referred to under 1Co 11:29. This is the same word as discerning in 1Co 11:29, but the A.V. recognizes no distinction between it, and judged (
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Vincent: 1Co 11:31 - -- We should not be judged ( οὐκ ἀν ἐκρινόμεθα )
By God. Here judged is correct. A proper self-examination would save us fr...
We should not be judged (
By God. Here judged is correct. A proper self-examination would save us from the divine judgment.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Vincent: 1Co 11:32 - -- When we are judged ( κρινόμενοι )
Correct. The same word as the last. With this construe by the Lord ; not with chastened . The...
When we are judged (
Correct. The same word as the last. With this construe by the Lord ; not with chastened . The antithesis to judging ourselves is thus preserved. So Rev., in margin.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Vincent: 1Co 11:32 - -- Condemned ( κατακριθῶμεν )
Signifying the final condemnatory judgment; but in 1Co 11:29 the simple κρῖμα temporary judgme...
Condemned (
Signifying the final condemnatory judgment; but in 1Co 11:29 the simple
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Vincent: 1Co 11:33 - -- Tarry ( ἐκδέχεσθε )
In the usual New-Testament sense, as Joh 5:3; Act 17:16; though in some cases the idea of expectancy is emphas...
Tarry (
In the usual New-Testament sense, as Joh 5:3; Act 17:16; though in some cases the idea of expectancy is emphasized, as Heb 10:13; Heb 11:10; Jam 5:7. Some render receive ye one another, in contrast with despising the poorer guests; but this is not according to New-Testament usage.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Vincent: 1Co 11:34 - -- Will I set in order ( διατάξομαι )
Referring to outward, practical arrangements. See on Mat 11:1, and compare 1Co 9:14; 1Co 16:1; Gal...
Wesley -> 1Co 11:5; 1Co 11:6; 1Co 11:7; 1Co 11:8; 1Co 11:10; 1Co 11:11; 1Co 11:12; 1Co 11:13; 1Co 11:14; 1Co 11:15; 1Co 11:16; 1Co 11:18; 1Co 11:18; 1Co 11:19; 1Co 11:19; 1Co 11:20; 1Co 11:20; 1Co 11:21; 1Co 11:22; 1Co 11:23; 1Co 11:24; 1Co 11:25; 1Co 11:25; 1Co 11:26; 1Co 11:26; 1Co 11:27; 1Co 11:28; 1Co 11:29; 1Co 11:29; 1Co 11:30; 1Co 11:30; 1Co 11:31; 1Co 11:31; 1Co 11:32; 1Co 11:33
Wesley: 1Co 11:5 - -- Who, under an immediate impulse of the Spirit, (for then only was a woman suffered to speak in the church,) prays or prophesies without a veil on her ...
Who, under an immediate impulse of the Spirit, (for then only was a woman suffered to speak in the church,) prays or prophesies without a veil on her face, as it were disclaims subjection, and reflects dishonour on man, her head. For it is the same, in effect, as if she cut her hair short, and wore it in the distinguishing form of the men. In those ages, men wore their hair exceeding short, as appears from the ancient statues and pictures.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Wesley: 1Co 11:6 - -- If she will throw off the badge of subjection, let her appear with her hair cut like a man's. But if it be shameful far a woman to appear thus in publ...
If she will throw off the badge of subjection, let her appear with her hair cut like a man's. But if it be shameful far a woman to appear thus in public, especially in a religious assembly, let her, for the same reason, keep on her veil.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Wesley: 1Co 11:7 - -- In the dominion he bears over the creation, representing the supreme dominion of God, which is his glory. But the woman is only matter of glory to the...
In the dominion he bears over the creation, representing the supreme dominion of God, which is his glory. But the woman is only matter of glory to the man, who has a becoming dominion over her. Therefore she ought not to appear, but with her head veiled, as a tacit acknowledgment of it.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Wesley: 1Co 11:10 - -- Who attend there, and before whom they should be careful not to do anything indecent or irregular.
Who attend there, and before whom they should be careful not to do anything indecent or irregular.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Neither is excluded; neither is preferred before the other in his kingdom.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
The man, the woman, and their dependence on each other.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Wesley: 1Co 11:13 - -- For what need of more arguments if so plain a case? Is it decent for a woman to pray to God - The Most High, with that bold and undaunted air which sh...
For what need of more arguments if so plain a case? Is it decent for a woman to pray to God - The Most High, with that bold and undaunted air which she must have, when, contrary to universal custom, she appears in public with her head uncovered?
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Wesley: 1Co 11:14 - -- For a man to have long hair, carefully adjusted, is such a mark of effeminacy as is a disgrace to him.
For a man to have long hair, carefully adjusted, is such a mark of effeminacy as is a disgrace to him.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Originally, before the arts of dress were in being.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Wesley: 1Co 11:16 - -- The several churches that were in the apostles' time had different customs in things that were not essential; and that under one and the same apostle,...
The several churches that were in the apostles' time had different customs in things that were not essential; and that under one and the same apostle, as circumstances, in different places, made it convenient. And in all things merely indifferent the custom of each place was of sufficient weight to determine prudent and peaceable men. Yet even this cannot overrule a scrupulous conscience, which really doubts whether the thing be indifferent or no. But those who are referred to here by the apostle were contentious, not conscientious, persons.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Wesley: 1Co 11:18 - -- That is, I believe it of some of you. It is plain that by schisms is not meant any separation from the church, but uncharitable divisions in it; for t...
That is, I believe it of some of you. It is plain that by schisms is not meant any separation from the church, but uncharitable divisions in it; for the Corinthians continued to be one church; and, notwithstanding all their strife and contention, there was no separation of any one party from the rest, with regard to external communion. And it is in the same sense that the word is used, 1Co 1:10; 1Co 12:25; which are the only places in the New Testament, beside this, where church schisms are mentioned. Therefore, the indulging any temper contrary to this tender care of each other is the true scriptural schism. This is, therefore, a quite different thing from that orderly separation from corrupt churches which later ages have stigmatized as schisms; and have made a pretence for the vilest cruelties, oppressions, and murders, that have troubled the Christian world. Both heresies and schisms are here mentioned in very near the same sense; unless by schisms be meant, rather, those inward animosities which occasion heresies; that is, outward divisions or parties: so that whilst one said, "I am of Paul," another, "I am of Apollos," this implied both schism and heresy. So wonderfully have later ages distorted the words heresy and schism from their scriptural meaning. Heresy is not, in all the Bible, taken for "an error in fundamentals," or in anything else; nor schism, for any separation made from the outward communion of others. Therefore, both heresy and schism, in the modern sense of the words, are sins that the scripture knows nothing of; but were invented merely to deprive mankind of the benefit of private judgment, and liberty of conscience.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Wesley: 1Co 11:19 - -- In the ordinary course of things; and God permits them, that it may appear who among you are, and who are not, upright of heart.
In the ordinary course of things; and God permits them, that it may appear who among you are, and who are not, upright of heart.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
That is, in consequence of those schisms.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
That solemn memorial of his death; but quite another thing.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Wesley: 1Co 11:21 - -- For in eating what ye call the Lord's supper, instead of all partaking of one bread, each person brings his own supper, and eats it without staying fo...
For in eating what ye call the Lord's supper, instead of all partaking of one bread, each person brings his own supper, and eats it without staying for the rest. And hereby the poor, who cannot provide for themselves, have nothing; while the rich eat and drink to the full just as the heathens use to do at the feasts on their sacrifices.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Wesley: 1Co 11:22 - -- Of which the poor are both the larger and the better part. Do ye act thus in designed contempt of them?
Of which the poor are both the larger and the better part. Do ye act thus in designed contempt of them?
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Wesley: 1Co 11:24 - -- That is, this broken bread is the sign of my body, which is even now to be pierced and wounded for your iniquities. Take then, and eat of, this bread,...
That is, this broken bread is the sign of my body, which is even now to be pierced and wounded for your iniquities. Take then, and eat of, this bread, in an humble, thankful, obediential remembrance of my dying love; of the extremity of my sufferings on your behalf, of the blessings I have thereby procured for you, and of the obligations to love and duty which I have by all this laid upon you.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Therefore ye ought not to confound this with a common meal.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Wesley: 1Co 11:25 - -- The ancient sacrifices were in remembrance of sin: this sacrifice, once offered, is still represented in remembrance of the remission of sins.
The ancient sacrifices were in remembrance of sin: this sacrifice, once offered, is still represented in remembrance of the remission of sins.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Ye proclaim, as it were, and openly avow it to God, and to all the world.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Wesley: 1Co 11:27 - -- That is, in an unworthy, irreverent manner; without regarding either Him that appointed it, or the design of its appointment. Shall be guilty of profa...
That is, in an unworthy, irreverent manner; without regarding either Him that appointed it, or the design of its appointment. Shall be guilty of profaning that which represents the body and blood of the Lord.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Wesley: 1Co 11:28 - -- Whether he know the nature and the design of the institution, and whether it be his own desire and purpose throughly to comply therewith.
Whether he know the nature and the design of the institution, and whether it be his own desire and purpose throughly to comply therewith.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
As to our knowledge, and the design with which we approach the Lord's table.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Wesley: 1Co 11:32 - -- When we are thus judged, it is with this merciful design, that we may not be finally condemned with the world.
When we are thus judged, it is with this merciful design, that we may not be finally condemned with the world.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
The other circumstances relating to the Lord's supper.
JFB -> 1Co 11:5; 1Co 11:5; 1Co 11:5; 1Co 11:6; 1Co 11:6; 1Co 11:7-9; 1Co 11:7-9; 1Co 11:7-9; 1Co 11:8; 1Co 11:9; 1Co 11:10; 1Co 11:10; 1Co 11:11; 1Co 11:12; 1Co 11:13; 1Co 11:13; 1Co 11:14; 1Co 11:15; 1Co 11:16; 1Co 11:16; 1Co 11:16; 1Co 11:16; 1Co 11:16; 1Co 11:17; 1Co 11:17; 1Co 11:17; 1Co 11:17; 1Co 11:17; 1Co 11:18; 1Co 11:18; 1Co 11:18; 1Co 11:19; 1Co 11:19; 1Co 11:20; 1Co 11:20; 1Co 11:21; 1Co 11:21; 1Co 11:21; 1Co 11:22; 1Co 11:22; 1Co 11:22; 1Co 11:22; 1Co 11:22; 1Co 11:23; 1Co 11:23; 1Co 11:23; 1Co 11:23; 1Co 11:23; 1Co 11:24; 1Co 11:24; 1Co 11:24; 1Co 11:25; 1Co 11:25; 1Co 11:25; 1Co 11:25; 1Co 11:25; 1Co 11:26; 1Co 11:26; 1Co 11:26; 1Co 11:27; 1Co 11:28; 1Co 11:28; 1Co 11:28; 1Co 11:28; 1Co 11:29; 1Co 11:29; 1Co 11:30; 1Co 11:30; 1Co 11:31; 1Co 11:32; 1Co 11:32; 1Co 11:33; 1Co 11:34; 1Co 11:34
JFB: 1Co 11:5 - -- This instance of women speaking in public worship is an extraordinary case, and justified only by the miraculous gifts which such women possessed as t...
This instance of women speaking in public worship is an extraordinary case, and justified only by the miraculous gifts which such women possessed as their credentials; for instance, Anna the prophetess and Priscilla (so Act 2:18). The ordinary rule to them is: silence in public (1Co 14:34-35; 1Ti 2:11-12). Mental receptivity and activity in family life are recognized in Christianity, as most accordant with the destiny of woman. This passage does not necessarily sanction women speaking in public, even though possessing miraculous gifts; but simply records what took place at Corinth, without expressing an opinion on it, reserving the censure of it till 1Co 14:34-35. Even those women endowed with prophecy were designed to exercise their gift, rather in other times and places, than the public congregation.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: 1Co 11:5 - -- In that she acts against the divine ordinance and the modest propriety that becomes her: in putting away the veil, she puts away the badge of her subj...
In that she acts against the divine ordinance and the modest propriety that becomes her: in putting away the veil, she puts away the badge of her subjection to man, which is her true "honor"; for through him it connects her with Christ, the head of the man. Moreover, as the head-covering was the emblem of maiden modesty before man (Gen 24:65), and conjugal chastity (Gen 20:16); so, to uncover the head indicated withdrawal from the power of the husband, whence a suspected wife had her head uncovered by the priest (Num 5:18). ALFORD takes "her head" to be man, her symbolical, not her literal head; but as it is literal in the former clause, it must be so in the latter one.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: 1Co 11:5 - -- As woman's hair is given her by nature, as her covering (1Co 11:15), to cut it off like a man, all admit, would be indecorous: therefore, to put away ...
As woman's hair is given her by nature, as her covering (1Co 11:15), to cut it off like a man, all admit, would be indecorous: therefore, to put away the head-covering, too, like a man, would be similarly indecorous. It is natural to her to have long hair for her covering: she ought, therefore, to add the other (the wearing of a head-covering) to show that she does of her own will that which nature itself teaches she ought to do, in token of her subjection to man.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: 1Co 11:6 - -- A woman would not like to be "shorn" or (what is worse) "shaven"; but if she chooses to be uncovered (unveiled) in front, let her be so also behind, t...
A woman would not like to be "shorn" or (what is worse) "shaven"; but if she chooses to be uncovered (unveiled) in front, let her be so also behind, that is, "shorn."
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: 1Co 11:6 - -- An unbecoming thing (compare 1Co 11:13-15). Thus the shaving of nuns is "a shame."
An unbecoming thing (compare 1Co 11:13-15). Thus the shaving of nuns is "a shame."
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: 1Co 11:7-9 - -- Argument, also, from man's more immediate relation to God, and the woman's to man.
Argument, also, from man's more immediate relation to God, and the woman's to man.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: 1Co 11:7-9 - -- Being created in God's "image," first and directly: the woman, subsequently, and indirectly, through the mediation of man. Man is the representative o...
Being created in God's "image," first and directly: the woman, subsequently, and indirectly, through the mediation of man. Man is the representative of God's "glory" this ideal of man being realized most fully in the Son of man (Psa 8:4-5; compare 2Co 8:23). Man is declared in Scripture to be both the "image," and in the "likeness," of God (compare Jam 3:9). But "image" alone is applied to the Son of God (Col 1:15; compare Heb 1:3). "Express image," Greek, "the impress." The Divine Son is not merely "like" God, He is God of God, "being of one substance (essence) with the Father." [Nicene Creed].
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: 1Co 11:7-9 - -- He does not say, also, "the image of the man." For the sexes differ: moreover, the woman is created in the image of God, as well as the man (Gen 1:26-...
He does not say, also, "the image of the man." For the sexes differ: moreover, the woman is created in the image of God, as well as the man (Gen 1:26-27). But as the moon in relation to the sun (Gen 37:9), so woman shines not so much with light direct from God, as with light derived from man, that is, in her order in creation; not that she does not in grace come individually into direct communion with God; but even here much of her knowledge is mediately given her through man, on whom she is naturally dependent.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: 1Co 11:8 - -- Takes his being from ("out of") . . . from: referring to woman's original creation, "taken out of man" (compare Gen 2:23). The woman was made by God m...
Takes his being from ("out of") . . . from: referring to woman's original creation, "taken out of man" (compare Gen 2:23). The woman was made by God mediately through the man, who was, as it were, a veil or medium placed between her and God, and therefore, should wear the veil or head-covering in public worship, in acknowledgement of this subordination to man in the order of creation. The man being made immediately by God as His glory, has no veil between himself and God [FABER STAPULENSIS in BENGEL].
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: 1Co 11:9 - -- Rather, "For also"; Another argument: The immediate object of woman's creation. "The man was not created for the sake of the woman; but the woman for ...
Rather, "For also"; Another argument: The immediate object of woman's creation. "The man was not created for the sake of the woman; but the woman for the sake of the man" (Gen 2:18, Gen 2:21-22). Just as the Church, the bride, is made for Christ; and yet in both the natural and the spiritual creations, the bride, while made for the bridegroom, in fulfilling that end, attains her own true "glory," and brings "shame" and "dishonor" on herself by any departure from it (1Co 11:4, 1Co 11:6).
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: 1Co 11:10 - -- The kerchief: French couvre chef, head-covering, the emblem of "power on her head"; the sign of her being under man's power, and exercising delegated ...
The kerchief: French couvre chef, head-covering, the emblem of "power on her head"; the sign of her being under man's power, and exercising delegated authority under him. Paul had before his mind the root-connection between the Hebrew terms for "veil" (radid), and "subjection" (radad).
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: 1Co 11:10 - -- Who are present at our Christian assemblies (compare Psa 138:1, "gods," that is, angels), and delight in the orderly subordination of the several rank...
Who are present at our Christian assemblies (compare Psa 138:1, "gods," that is, angels), and delight in the orderly subordination of the several ranks of God's worshippers in their respective places, the outward demeanor and dress of the latter being indicative of that inward humility which angels know to be most pleasing to their common Lord (1Co 4:9; Eph 3:10; Ecc 5:6). HAMMOND quotes CHRYSOSTOM, "Thou standest with angels; thou singest with them; thou hymnest with them; and yet dost thou stand laughing?" BENGEL explains, "As the angels are in relation to God, so the woman is in relation to man. God's face is uncovered; angels in His presence are veiled (Isa 6:2). Man's face is uncovered; woman in His presence is to be veiled. For her not to be so, would, by its indecorousness, offend the angels (Mat 18:10, Mat 18:31). She, by her weakness, especially needs their ministry; she ought, therefore, to be the more careful not to offend them."
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: 1Co 11:11 - -- Yet neither sex is insulated and independent of the other in the Christian life [ALFORD]. The one needs the other in the sexual relation; and in respe...
Yet neither sex is insulated and independent of the other in the Christian life [ALFORD]. The one needs the other in the sexual relation; and in respect to Christ ("in the Lord"), the man and the woman together (for neither can be dispensed with) realize the ideal of redeemed humanity represented by the bride, the Church.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: 1Co 11:12 - -- As the woman was formed out of (from) the man, even so is man born by means of woman; but all things (including both man and woman) are from God as th...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: 1Co 11:13 - -- By rejecting the emblem of subjection (the head-covering), she passes at one leap in praying publicly beyond both the man and angels [BENGEL].
By rejecting the emblem of subjection (the head-covering), she passes at one leap in praying publicly beyond both the man and angels [BENGEL].
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: 1Co 11:14 - -- The fact that nature has provided woman, and not man, with long hair, proves that man was designed to be uncovered, and woman covered. The Nazarite, h...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: 1Co 11:15 - -- Not that she does not need additional covering. Nay, her long hair shows she ought to cover her head as much as possible. The will ought to accord wit...
Not that she does not need additional covering. Nay, her long hair shows she ought to cover her head as much as possible. The will ought to accord with nature [BENGEL].
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: 1Co 11:16 - -- A summary close to the argument by appeal to the universal custom of the churches.
A summary close to the argument by appeal to the universal custom of the churches.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: 1Co 11:16 - -- The Greek also means "thinks" (fit) (compare Mat 3:9). If any man chooses (still after all my arguments) to be contentious. If any be contentious and ...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: 1Co 11:16 - -- Apostles: or we of the Jewish nation, from whom ye have received the Gospel, and whose usages in all that is good ye ought to follow: Jewish women vei...
Apostles: or we of the Jewish nation, from whom ye have received the Gospel, and whose usages in all that is good ye ought to follow: Jewish women veiled themselves when in public, according to TERTULLIAN [ESTIUS]. The former explanation is best, as the Jews are not referred to in the context: but he often refers to himself and his fellow apostles, by the expression, "we--us" (1Co 4:9-10).
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: 1Co 11:16 - -- As that of women praying uncovered. Not as CHRYSOSTOM, "that of being contentious." The Greek term implies a usage, rather than a mental habit (Joh 18...
As that of women praying uncovered. Not as CHRYSOSTOM, "that of being contentious." The Greek term implies a usage, rather than a mental habit (Joh 18:39). The usage of true "churches (plural: not, as Rome uses it, 'the Church,' as an abstract entity; but 'the churches,' as a number of independent witnesses) of God" (the churches which God Himself recognizes), is a valid argument in the case of external rites, especially, negatively, for example, Such rites were not received among them, therefore, ought not to be admitted among us: but in questions of doctrine, or the essentials of worship, the argument is not valid [SCLATER] (1Co 7:17; 1Co 14:33).
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: 1Co 11:16 - -- Nor yet. Catholic usage is not an infallible test of truth, but a general test of decency.
Nor yet. Catholic usage is not an infallible test of truth, but a general test of decency.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: 1Co 11:17 - -- Rather, "I enjoin"; as the Greek is always so used. The oldest manuscripts read literally "This I enjoin (you) not praising (you)."
Rather, "I enjoin"; as the Greek is always so used. The oldest manuscripts read literally "This I enjoin (you) not praising (you)."
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: 1Co 11:17 - -- Inasmuch as; in that you, &c. Here he qualifies his praise (1Co 11:2). "I said that I praised you for keeping the ordinances delivered to you; but I m...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Not so as to progress to what is better.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: 1Co 11:17 - -- So as to retrograde to what is worse. The result of such "coming together" must be "condemnation" (1Co 11:34).
So as to retrograde to what is worse. The result of such "coming together" must be "condemnation" (1Co 11:34).
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: 1Co 11:18 - -- In the first place. The "divisions" (Greek, "schisms") meant, are not merely those of opinion (1Co 1:10), but in outward acts at the love-feasts (Agap...
In the first place. The "divisions" (Greek, "schisms") meant, are not merely those of opinion (1Co 1:10), but in outward acts at the love-feasts (Agapæ), (1Co 11:21). He does not follow up the expression, "in the first place," by "in the second place." But though not expressed, a second abuse was in his mind when he said, "In the first place," namely, THE ABUSE OF SPIRITUAL GIFTS, which also created disorder in their assemblies [ALFORD], (1Co 12:1; 1Co 14:23, 1Co 14:26, 1Co 14:33, 1Co 14:40).
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: 1Co 11:18 - -- Not the place of worship; for ISIDORE OF PELUSIUM denies that there were such places specially set apart for worship in the apostles' times [Epistle, ...
Not the place of worship; for ISIDORE OF PELUSIUM denies that there were such places specially set apart for worship in the apostles' times [Epistle, 246.2]. But, "in the assembly" or "congregation"; in convocation for worship, where especially love, order, and harmony should prevail. The very ordinance instituted for uniting together believers in one body, was made an occasion of "divisions" (schisms).
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: 1Co 11:18 - -- He hereby excepts the innocent. "I am unwilling to believe all I hear, but some I cannot help believing" [ALFORD]: while my love is unaffected by it [...
He hereby excepts the innocent. "I am unwilling to believe all I hear, but some I cannot help believing" [ALFORD]: while my love is unaffected by it [BENGEL].
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: 1Co 11:19 - -- Not merely "schisms" or "divisions" (1Co 11:18), which are "recent dissensions of the congregation through differences of opinion" [AUGUSTINE, Con. Cr...
Not merely "schisms" or "divisions" (1Co 11:18), which are "recent dissensions of the congregation through differences of opinion" [AUGUSTINE, Con. Crescon. Don. 2.7, quoted by TRENCH, Greek Synonyms of the New Testament], but also "heresies," that is, "schisms which have now become inveterate"; "Sects" [CAMPBELL, vol. 2, pp. 126, 127]: so Act 5:17; Act 15:5 translate the same Greek. At present there were dissensions at the love-feasts; but Paul, remembering Jesus' words (Mat 18:7; Mat 24:10, Mat 24:12; Luk 17:1) foresees "there must be (come) also" matured separations, and established parties in secession, as separatists. The "must be" arises from sin in professors necessarily bearing its natural fruits: these are overruled by God to the probation of character of both the godly and the ungodly, and to the discipline of the former for glory. "Heresies" had not yet its technical sense ecclesiastically, referring to doctrinal errors: it means confirmed schisms. ST. AUGUSTINE'S rule is a golden rule as regards questions of heresy and catholicity: "In doubtful questions, liberty; in essentials, unity; in all things, charity."
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: 1Co 11:20 - -- Rather, "there is no such thing as eating the LORD'S Supper"; it is not possible where each is greedily intent only on devouring "HIS OWN supper," and...
Rather, "there is no such thing as eating the LORD'S Supper"; it is not possible where each is greedily intent only on devouring "HIS OWN supper," and some are excluded altogether, not having been waited for (1Co 11:33), where some are "drunken," while others are "hungry" (1Co 11:21). The love-feast usually preceded the Lord's Supper (as eating the Passover came before the Lord's Supper at the first institution of the latter). It was a club-feast, where each brought his portion, and the rich, extra portions for the poor; from it the bread and wine were taken for the Eucharist; and it was at it that the excesses took place, which made a true celebration of the Lord's Supper during or after it, with true discernment of its solemnity, out of the question.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: 1Co 11:21 - -- The rich "before" the poor, who had no supper of their own. Instead of "tarrying for one another" (1Co 11:33); hence the precept (1Co 12:21, 1Co 12:25...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: 1Co 11:21 - -- "His own" belly is his God (Phi 3:19); "the Lord's Supper," the spiritual feast, never enters his thoughts.
"His own" belly is his God (Phi 3:19); "the Lord's Supper," the spiritual feast, never enters his thoughts.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
The one has more than is good for him, the other less [BENGEL].
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: 1Co 11:22 - -- (compare 1Co 11:34) --"at home." That is the place to satiate the appetite, not the assembly of the brethren [ALFORD].
(compare 1Co 11:34) --"at home." That is the place to satiate the appetite, not the assembly of the brethren [ALFORD].
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: 1Co 11:22 - -- The congregation mostly composed of the poor, whom "God hath chosen," however ye show contempt for them (Jam 2:5); compare "of God" here, marking the ...
The congregation mostly composed of the poor, whom "God hath chosen," however ye show contempt for them (Jam 2:5); compare "of God" here, marking the true honor of the Church.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: 1Co 11:22 - -- Namely, houses to eat and drink in, and who, therefore, ought to have received their portion at the love-feasts from their wealthier brethren.
Namely, houses to eat and drink in, and who, therefore, ought to have received their portion at the love-feasts from their wealthier brethren.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: 1Co 11:23 - -- His object is to show the unworthiness of such conduct from the dignity of the holy supper.
His object is to show the unworthiness of such conduct from the dignity of the holy supper.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Emphatic in the Greek. It is not my own invention, but the Lord's institution.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: 1Co 11:23 - -- By immediate revelation (Gal 1:12; compare Act 22:17-18; 2Co 12:1-4). The renewal of the institution of the Lord's Supper by special revelation to Pau...
By immediate revelation (Gal 1:12; compare Act 22:17-18; 2Co 12:1-4). The renewal of the institution of the Lord's Supper by special revelation to Paul enhances its solemnity. The similarity between Luke's and Paul's account of the institution, favors the supposition that the former drew his information from the apostle, whose companion in travel he was. Thus, the undesigned coincidence is a proof of genuineness.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: 1Co 11:23 - -- The time fixed for the Passover (Exo 12:6): though the time for the Lord's Supper is not fixed.
The time fixed for the Passover (Exo 12:6): though the time for the Lord's Supper is not fixed.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: 1Co 11:23 - -- With the traitor at the table, and death present before His eyes, He left this ordinance as His last gift to us, to commemorate His death. Though abou...
With the traitor at the table, and death present before His eyes, He left this ordinance as His last gift to us, to commemorate His death. Though about to receive such an injury from man, He gave this pledge of His amazing love to man.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: 1Co 11:24 - -- The breaking of the bread involves its distribution and reproves the Corinthian mode at the love-feast, of "every one taking before other his own supp...
The breaking of the bread involves its distribution and reproves the Corinthian mode at the love-feast, of "every one taking before other his own supper."
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: 1Co 11:24 - -- "given" (Luk 22:19) for you (Greek, "in your behalf"), and "broken," so as to be distributed among you. The oldest manuscripts omit "broken," leaving ...
"given" (Luk 22:19) for you (Greek, "in your behalf"), and "broken," so as to be distributed among you. The oldest manuscripts omit "broken," leaving it to be supplied from "brake." The two old versions, Memphitic and Thebaic, read from Luke, "given." The literal "body" could not have been meant; for Christ was still sensibly present among His disciples when He said, "This is My body." They could only have understood Him symbolically and analogically: As this bread is to your bodily health, so My body is to the spiritual health of the believing communicant. The words, "Take, eat," are not in the oldest manuscripts.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: 1Co 11:25 - -- Greek, "after the eating of supper," namely, the Passover supper which preceded the Lord's Supper, as the love-feast did subsequently. Therefore, you ...
Greek, "after the eating of supper," namely, the Passover supper which preceded the Lord's Supper, as the love-feast did subsequently. Therefore, you Corinthians ought to separate common meals from the Lord's Supper [BENGEL].
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: 1Co 11:25 - -- Or "covenant." The cup is the parchment-deed, as it were, on which My new covenant, or last will is written and sealed, making over to you all blessin...
Or "covenant." The cup is the parchment-deed, as it were, on which My new covenant, or last will is written and sealed, making over to you all blessings here and hereafter.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: 1Co 11:25 - -- Greek, "as many times soever": implying that it is an ordinance often to be partaken of.
Greek, "as many times soever": implying that it is an ordinance often to be partaken of.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: 1Co 11:25 - -- Luke (Luk 22:19) expresses this, which is understood by Matthew and Mark. Paul twice records it (1Co 11:24 and here) as suiting his purpose. The old s...
Luke (Luk 22:19) expresses this, which is understood by Matthew and Mark. Paul twice records it (1Co 11:24 and here) as suiting his purpose. The old sacrifices brought sins continually to remembrance (Heb 10:1, Heb 10:3). The Lord's Supper brings to remembrance Christ and His sacrifice once for all for the full and final remission of sins.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
In proof that the Lord's Supper is "in remembrance" of Him.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: 1Co 11:26 - -- Announce publicly. The Greek does not mean to dramatically represent, but "ye publicly profess each of you, the Lord has died FOR ME" [WAHL]. This wor...
Announce publicly. The Greek does not mean to dramatically represent, but "ye publicly profess each of you, the Lord has died FOR ME" [WAHL]. This word, as "is" in Christ's institution (1Co 11:24-25), implies not literal presence, but a vivid realization, by faith, of Christ in the Lord's Supper, as a living person, not a mere abstract dogma, "bone of our bone, and flesh of our flesh" (Eph 5:30; compare Gen 2:23); and ourselves "members of His body, of His flesh, and of His bones," "our sinful bodies made clean by His body (once for all offered), and our souls washed through His most precious blood" [Church of England Prayer Book]. "Show," or "announce," is an expression applicable to new things; compare "show" as to the Passover (Exo 13:8). So the Lord's death ought always to be fresh in our memory; compare in heaven, Rev 5:6. That the Lord's Supper is in remembrance of Him, implies that He is bodily absent, though spiritually present, for we cannot be said to commemorate one absent. The fact that we not only show the Lord's death in the supper, but eat and drink the pledges of it, could only be understood by the Jews, accustomed to such feasts after propitiatory sacrifices, as implying our personal appropriation therein of the benefits of that death.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: 1Co 11:26 - -- When there shall be no longer need of symbols of His body, the body itself being manifested. The Greek expresses the certainly of His coming. Rome tea...
When there shall be no longer need of symbols of His body, the body itself being manifested. The Greek expresses the certainly of His coming. Rome teaches that we eat Christ present corporally, "till He come" corporally; a contradiction in terms. The showbread, literally, "bread of the presence," was in the sanctuary, but not in the Holiest Place (Heb 9:1-8); so the Lord's Supper in heaven, the antitype to the Holiest Place, shall be superseded by Christ's own bodily presence; then the wine shall be drunk "anew" in the Father's kingdom, by Christ and His people together, of which heavenly banquet, the Lord's Supper is a spiritual foretaste and specimen (Mat 26:29). Meantime, as the showbread was placed anew, every sabbath, on the table before the Lord (Lev 24:5-8); so the Lord's death was shown, or announced afresh at the Lord's table the first day of every week in the primitive Church. We are now "priests unto God" in the dispensation of Christ's spiritual presence, antitypical to the HOLY PLACE: the perfect and eternal dispensation, which shall not begin till Christ's coming, is antitypical to the HOLIEST PLACE, which Christ our High Priest alone in the flesh as yet has entered (Heb 9:6-7); but which, at His coming, we, too, who are believers, shall enter (Rev 7:15; Rev 21:22). The supper joins the two closing periods of the Old and the New dispensations. The first and second comings are considered as one coming, whence the expression is not "return," but "come" (compare, however, Joh 14:3).
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: 1Co 11:27 - -- So one of the oldest manuscripts reads. But three or four equally old manuscripts, the Vulgate and CYPRIAN, read, "or." Romanists quote this reading i...
So one of the oldest manuscripts reads. But three or four equally old manuscripts, the Vulgate and CYPRIAN, read, "or." Romanists quote this reading in favor of communion in one kind. This consequence does not follow. Paul says, "Whosoever is guilty of unworthy conduct, either in eating the bread, or in drinking the cup, is guilty of the body and blood of Christ." Impropriety in only one of the two elements, vitiates true communion in both. Therefore, in the end of the verse, he says, not "body or blood," but "body and blood." Any who takes the bread without the wine, or the wine without the bread, "unworthily" communicates, and so "is guilty of Christ's body and blood"; for he disobeys Christ's express command to partake of both. If we do not partake of the sacramental symbol of the Lord's death worthily, we share in the guilt of that death. (Compare "crucify to themselves the Son of God afresh," Heb 6:6). Unworthiness in the person, is not what ought to exclude any, but unworthily communicating: However unworthy we be, if we examine ourselves so as to find that we penitently believe in Christ's Gospel, we may worthily communicate.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: 1Co 11:28 - -- Greek, "prove" or "test" his own state of mind in respect to Christ's death, and his capability of "discerning the Lord's body" (1Co 11:29, 1Co 11:31)...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: 1Co 11:28 - -- In 1Co 11:27, where the receiving was unworthily, the expression was, "eat this bread, drink . . . cup" without "of." Here the "of" implies due circum...
In 1Co 11:27, where the receiving was unworthily, the expression was, "eat this bread, drink . . . cup" without "of." Here the "of" implies due circumspection in communicating [BENGEL].
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: 1Co 11:28 - -- His self-examination is not in order that he may stay away, but that he may eat, that is, communicate.
His self-examination is not in order that he may stay away, but that he may eat, that is, communicate.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: 1Co 11:29 - -- A mistranslation which has put a stumbling-block in the way of many in respect to communicating. The right translation is "judgment." The judgment is ...
A mistranslation which has put a stumbling-block in the way of many in respect to communicating. The right translation is "judgment." The judgment is described (1Co 11:30-32) as temporal.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: 1Co 11:29 - -- Not duty judging: not distinguishing in judgment (so the Greek: the sin and its punishment thus being marked as corresponding) from common food, the s...
Not duty judging: not distinguishing in judgment (so the Greek: the sin and its punishment thus being marked as corresponding) from common food, the sacramental pledges of the Lord's body. Most of the oldest manuscripts omit "Lord's" (see 1Co 11:27). Omitting also "unworthily," with most of the oldest manuscripts, we must translate, "He that eateth and drinketh, eateth and drinketh judgment to himself, IF he discern not the body" (Heb 10:29). The Church is "the body of Christ" (1Co 12:27). The Lord's body is His literal body appreciated and discerned by the soul in the faithful receiving, and not present in the elements themselves.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: 1Co 11:30 - -- He is "weak" who has naturally no strength: "sickly," who has lost his strength by disease [TITTMANN, Greek Synonyms of the New Testament].
He is "weak" who has naturally no strength: "sickly," who has lost his strength by disease [TITTMANN, Greek Synonyms of the New Testament].
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: 1Co 11:30 - -- Are being lulled in death: not a violent death; but one the result of sickness, sent as the Lord's chastening for the individual's salvation, the mind...
Are being lulled in death: not a violent death; but one the result of sickness, sent as the Lord's chastening for the individual's salvation, the mind being brought to a right state on the sick bed (1Co 11:31).
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: 1Co 11:31 - -- Most of the oldest manuscripts, read "But," not "For." Translate also literally "If we duly judged ourselves, we should not be (or not have been) judg...
Most of the oldest manuscripts, read "But," not "For." Translate also literally "If we duly judged ourselves, we should not be (or not have been) judged," that is, we should escape (or have escaped) our present judgments. In order to duly judge or "discern [appreciate] the Lord's body," we need to "duly judge ourselves." A prescient warning against the dogma of priestly absolution after full confession, as the necessary preliminary to receiving the Lord's Supper.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: 1Co 11:33 - -- In contrast to 1Co 11:21. The expression is not, "Give a share to one another," for all the viands brought to the feast were common property, and, the...
In contrast to 1Co 11:21. The expression is not, "Give a share to one another," for all the viands brought to the feast were common property, and, therefore, they should "tarry" till all were met to partake together of the common feast of fellowship [THEOPHYLACT].
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: 1Co 11:34 - -- So as not to be able to "tarry for others," let him take off the edge of his hunger at home [ALFORD] (1Co 11:22).
So as not to be able to "tarry for others," let him take off the edge of his hunger at home [ALFORD] (1Co 11:22).
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: 1Co 11:34 - -- "the other questions you asked me as to the due celebration of the Lord's Supper." Not other questions in general; for he does subsequently set in ord...
"the other questions you asked me as to the due celebration of the Lord's Supper." Not other questions in general; for he does subsequently set in order other general questions in this Epistle.
Clarke -> 1Co 11:5; 1Co 11:6; 1Co 11:7; 1Co 11:7; 1Co 11:7; 1Co 11:8; 1Co 11:9; 1Co 11:10; 1Co 11:11; 1Co 11:12; 1Co 11:13; 1Co 11:14; 1Co 11:15; 1Co 11:16; 1Co 11:17; 1Co 11:18; 1Co 11:19; 1Co 11:20; 1Co 11:21; 1Co 11:22; 1Co 11:22; 1Co 11:22; 1Co 11:23; 1Co 11:23; 1Co 11:24; 1Co 11:26; 1Co 11:27; 1Co 11:28; 1Co 11:29; 1Co 11:30; 1Co 11:31; 1Co 11:32; 1Co 11:33; 1Co 11:34; 1Co 11:34; 1Co 11:34
Clarke: 1Co 11:5 - -- But every woman that prayeth, etc. - Whatever may be the meaning of praying and prophesying, in respect to the man, they have precisely the same mea...
But every woman that prayeth, etc. - Whatever may be the meaning of praying and prophesying, in respect to the man, they have precisely the same meaning in respect to the woman. So that some women at least, as well as some men, might speak to others to edification, and exhortation, and comfort. And this kind of prophesying or teaching was predicted by Joel, Joe 2:28, and referred to by Peter, Act 2:17. And had there not been such gifts bestowed on women, the prophecy could not have had its fulfillment. The only difference marked by the apostle was, the man had his head uncovered, because he was the representative of Christ; the woman had hers covered, because she was placed by the order of God in a state of subjection to the man, and because it was a custom, both among the Greeks and Romans, and among the Jews an express law, that no woman should be seen abroad without a veil. This was, and is, a common custom through all the east, and none but public prostitutes go without veils. And if a woman should appear in public without a veil, she would dishonor her head - her husband. And she must appear like to those women who had their hair shorn off as the punishment of whoredom, or adultery
Tacitus informs us, Germ. 19, that, considering the greatness of the population, adulteries were very rare among the Germans; and when any woman was found guilty she was punished in the following way: accisis crinibus, nudatam coram propinquis expellit domo maritus ; "having cut off her hair, and stripped her before her relatives, her husband turned her out of doors."And we know that the woman suspected of adultery was ordered by the law of Moses to be stripped of her veil, Num 5:18. Women reduced to a state of servitude, or slavery, had their hair cut off: so we learn from Achilles Tatius. Clitophon says, concerning Leucippe, who was reduced to a state of slavery:
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: 1Co 11:6 - -- For if the woman be not covered - If she will not wear a veil in the public assemblies, let her be shorn - let her carry a public badge of infamy: b...
For if the woman be not covered - If she will not wear a veil in the public assemblies, let her be shorn - let her carry a public badge of infamy: but if it be a shame - if to be shorn or shaven would appear, as it must, a badge of infamy, then let her be covered - let her by all means wear a veil. Even in mourning it was considered disgraceful to be obliged to shear off the hair; and lest they should lose this ornament of their heads, the women contrived to evade the custom, by cutting off the ends of it only. Euripides, in Orest., ver. 128, speaking of Helen, who should have shaved her head on account of the death of her sister Clytemnestra, says:
In Hindostan a woman cuts off her hair at the death of her husband, as a token of widowhood; but this is never performed by a married woman, whose hair is considered an essential ornament. The veil of the Hindoo women is nothing more than the garment brought over the face, which is always very carefully done by the higher classes of women when they appear in the streets. - Ward’ s Customs.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: 1Co 11:7 - -- A man indeed ought not to cover his head - He should not wear his cap or turban in the public congregation, for this was a badge of servitude, or an...
A man indeed ought not to cover his head - He should not wear his cap or turban in the public congregation, for this was a badge of servitude, or an indication that he had a conscience overwhelmed with guilt; and besides, it was contrary to the custom that prevailed, both among the Greeks and Romans
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: 1Co 11:7 - -- He is the image and glory of God - He is God’ s vicegerent in this lower world; and, by the authority which he has received from his Master, he...
He is the image and glory of God - He is God’ s vicegerent in this lower world; and, by the authority which he has received from his Master, he is his representative among the creatures, and exhibits, more than any other part of the creation, the glory and perfections of the Creator
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: 1Co 11:7 - -- But the woman is the glory of the man - As the man is, among the creatures, the representative of the glory and perfections of God, so that the fear...
But the woman is the glory of the man - As the man is, among the creatures, the representative of the glory and perfections of God, so that the fear of him and the dread of him are on every beast of the field, etc.; so the woman is, in the house and family, the representative of the power and authority of the man. I believe this to be the meaning of the apostle; and that he is speaking here principally concerning power and authority, and skill to use them. It is certainly not the moral image of God, nor his celestial glory, of which he speaks in this verse.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: 1Co 11:8 - -- For, the man is not of the woman - Bishop Pearce translates ου γαρ εστιν ανηρ εκ γυναικος, αλλα γυνη εξ ανδρ...
For, the man is not of the woman - Bishop Pearce translates
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: 1Co 11:9 - -- Neither was the man created, etc. - Και γαρ ουκ εκτισθη· for the man was not created upon the woman’ s account. The reason i...
Neither was the man created, etc. -
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: 1Co 11:10 - -- For this cause ought the woman to have power on her head because of the angels - There are few portions in the sacred writings that have given rise ...
For this cause ought the woman to have power on her head because of the angels - There are few portions in the sacred writings that have given rise to such a variety of conjectures and explanations, and are less understood, than this verse, and 1Co 15:29. Our translators were puzzled with it; and have inserted here one of the largest marginal readings found any where in their work; but this is only on the words power on her head, which they interpret thus: that is, a covering, in sign that she is under the power of her husband. But, admitting this marginal reading to be a satisfactory solution so far as it goes, it by no means removes all the difficulty. Mr. Locke ingenuously acknowledged that he did not understand the meaning of the words; and almost every critic and learned man has a different explanation. Some have endeavored to force out a meaning by altering the text. The emendation of Mr. Toup, of Cornwall, is the most remarkable: he reads
1. That the original should be read, Wherefore the woman ought to have A power upon her head, that is, the power of the husband over the wife; the word power standing for the sign or token of that power which was a covering or veil. Theophylact explains the word,
2. The word angels presents another difficulty. Some suppose that by these the apostle means the fallen angels, or devils; others, the governors of the Church; and others, those who were deputed among the Jews to espouse a virgin in the name of a lover. All these senses the learned bishop rejects, and believes that the apostle uses the word angels, in its most obvious sense, for the heavenly angels; and that he speaks according to the notion which then prevailed among Jews, that the holy angels interested themselves in the affairs of men, and particularly were present in their religious assemblies, as the cherubim, their representation, were present in their temple. Thus we read in Ecc 5:6 : Neither say thou before the Angel, it was an error; and in 1Ti 5:21 : I charge thee before God and the Lord Jesus Christ, and the elect Angels, etc. Parallel to these is what Agrippa says in his oration to the Jews, Josephus, War, b. ii. chap. 16: I protest before God, your holy temple, and all the Angels of heaven, etc. All which passages suppose, or were spoken to those who supposed, that the angels know what passes here upon earth. The notion, whether just or not, prevailed among the Jews; and if so, St. Paul might speak according to the common opinion
3. Another difficulty lies in the phrase
The learned bishop is not very willing to allow that the doctrine of the presence of angelic beings in religious assemblies is legitimate; but what difficulty can there be in this, if we take the words of the apostle in another place: Are they not all ministering spirits, sent forth to minister for them who shall be heirs of salvation? Heb 1:14. And perhaps there is no time in which they can render more essential services to the followers of God than when they are engaged in Divine ordinances. On the whole, the bishop’ s sense of the passage and paraphrase stands thus: "And because of this superiority in the man, I conclude that the woman should have on her head a veil, the mark of her husband’ s power over her, especially in the religious assemblies, where the angels are supposed to be invisibly present.
The ancient versions make little alteration in the common reading, and the MSS. leave the verse nearly as it stands in the common printed editions. The Armenian has a word that answers to
In his view of this text, Kypke differs from all others; and nothing that so judicious a critic advances should be lightly regarded
1. He contends that
2. He directs that a comma be placed after
3. He contends that both the Latins and Greeks use debere and
Tu, nisi venti
Debes ludibrium, cave
Carm. lib. i. Od. xiv. ver. 15
Take heed lest thou owe a laughing stock to the winds; i.e. lest thou become the sport of the winds; for to these thou art now exposing thyself
So Dionys. Hal. Ant. lib. iii., page 205:
4. He contends that the words taken in this sense agree perfectly with the context, and with
For Dr. Lightfoot’ s opinion, that by angels we are to understand the paranymphs, or messengers who came on the part of others, to look out for proper spouses for their friends, I must refer to his works, vol. ii. fol., p. 772. The reader has now before him every thing that is likely to cast light on this difficult subject, and he must either adopt what he judges to be best, or else think for himself
After all, the custom of the Nazarite may cast some light upon this place. As Nazarite means one who has separated himself by vow to some religious austerity, wearing his own hair, etc.; so a married woman was considered a Nazarite for life; i.e. separated from all others, and joined to one husband, who is her lord: and hence the apostle, alluding to this circumstance, says, The woman ought to have power on her head, i.e. wear her hair and veil, for her hair is a proof of her being a Nazarite, and of her subjection to her husband, as the Nazarite was under subjection to the Lord, according to the rule or law of his order. See notes on Num 6:5-7 (note).
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: 1Co 11:11 - -- Neither is the man without the woman - The apostle seems to say: I do not intimate any disparagement of the female sex, by insisting on the necessit...
Neither is the man without the woman - The apostle seems to say: I do not intimate any disparagement of the female sex, by insisting on the necessity of her being under the power or authority of the man; for they are both equally dependent on each other, in the Lord,
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: 1Co 11:12 - -- For as the woman is of the man - For as the woman was first formed out of the side of man, man has ever since been formed out of the womb of the wom...
For as the woman is of the man - For as the woman was first formed out of the side of man, man has ever since been formed out of the womb of the woman; but they, as all other created things, are of God.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: 1Co 11:13 - -- Judge in yourselves - Consider the subject in your own common sense, and then say whether it be decent for a woman to pray in public without a veil ...
Judge in yourselves - Consider the subject in your own common sense, and then say whether it be decent for a woman to pray in public without a veil on her head? The heathen priestesses prayed or delivered their oracles bare-headed or with dishevelled hair, non comptae mansere comae , as in the case of the Cumaean Sibyl, Aen. vi., ver. 48, and otherwise in great disorder: to be conformed to them would be very disgraceful to Christian women. And in reference to such things as these, the apostle appeals to their sense of honor and decency.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: 1Co 11:14 - -- Doth not - nature - teach you, that, if a man have long hair - Nature certainly teaches us, by bestowing it, that it is proper for women to have lon...
Doth not - nature - teach you, that, if a man have long hair - Nature certainly teaches us, by bestowing it, that it is proper for women to have long hair; and it is not so with men. The hair of the male rarely grows like that of a female, unless art is used, and even then it bears but a scanty proportion to the former. Hence it is truly womanish to have long hair, and it is a shame to the man who affects it. In ancient times the people of Achaia, the province in which Corinth stood, and the Greeks in general, were noted for their long hair; and hence called by Homer, in a great variety of places,
1. Because it was a sign of humiliation
2. Because it was womanish
After all it is possible that St. Paul may refer to dressed, frizzled and curled hair, which shallow and effeminate men might have affected in that time, as they do in this. Perhaps there is not a sight more ridiculous in the eye of common sense than a high-dressed, curled, cued, and powdered head, with which the operator must have taken considerable pains, and the silly patient lost much time and comfort in submitting to what all but senseless custom must call an indignity and degradation. Hear nature, common sense, and reason, and they will inform you, that if a man have long hair, it is a shame unto him.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: 1Co 11:15 - -- But if a woman have long hair - The Author of their being has given a larger proportion of hair to the head of women than to that of men; and to the...
But if a woman have long hair - The Author of their being has given a larger proportion of hair to the head of women than to that of men; and to them it is an especial ornament, and may in various cases serve as a veil
It is a certain fact that a man’ s long hair renders him contemptible, and a woman’ s long hair renders her more amiable. Nature and the apostle speak the same language; we may account for it as we please.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: 1Co 11:16 - -- But if any man seem to be contentious - Ει δε τις δοκει φιλονεικος ειναι· If any person sets himself up as a wrangler ...
But if any man seem to be contentious -
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: 1Co 11:17 - -- Now in this - I praise you not - In the beginning of this epistle the apostle did praise them for their attention in general to the rules he had lai...
Now in this - I praise you not - In the beginning of this epistle the apostle did praise them for their attention in general to the rules he had laid down, see 1Co 11:2; but here he is obliged to condemn certain irregularities which had crept in among them, particularly relative to the celebration of the Lord’ s Supper. Through some false teaching which they had received, in the absence of the apostle, they appear to have celebrated it precisely in the same way the Jews did their passover. That, we know, was a regular meal, only accompanied with certain peculiar circumstances and ceremonies: two of these ceremonies were, eating bread, solemnly broken, and drinking a cup of wine called the cup of blessing. Now, it is certain that our Lord has taken these two things, and made them expressive of the crucifixion of his body, and the shedding of his blood, as an atonement for the sins of mankind. The teachers which had crept into the Corinthian Church appear to have perverted the whole of this Divine institution; for the celebration of the Lord’ s Supper appears to have been made among them a part of an ordinary meal. The people came together, and it appears brought their provisions with them; some had much, others had less; some ate to excess, others had scarcely enough to suffice nature. One was hungry, and the other was drunken,
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: 1Co 11:18 - -- There be divisions among you - They had σχισματα, schisms, among them: the old parties were kept up, even in the place where they assembled...
There be divisions among you - They had
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: 1Co 11:19 - -- There must be also heresies - Αἱρεσεις· Not a common consent of the members of the Church, either in the doctrines of the Gospel, or in...
There must be also heresies -
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: 1Co 11:20 - -- This is not to eat the Lord’ s Supper - They did not come together to eat the Lord’ s Supper exclusively, which they should have done, and...
This is not to eat the Lord’ s Supper - They did not come together to eat the Lord’ s Supper exclusively, which they should have done, and not have made it a part of an ordinary meal.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: 1Co 11:21 - -- Every one taketh before - his own supper - They had a grand feast, though the different sects kept in parties by themselves; but all took as ample a...
Every one taketh before - his own supper - They had a grand feast, though the different sects kept in parties by themselves; but all took as ample a supper as they could provide, (each bringing his own provisions with him), before they took what was called the Lord’ s Supper. See on 1Co 11:17 (note).
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: 1Co 11:22 - -- Have ye not houses to eat and to drink in? - They should have taken their ordinary meal at home, and have come together in the church to celebrate t...
Have ye not houses to eat and to drink in? - They should have taken their ordinary meal at home, and have come together in the church to celebrate the Lord’ s Supper
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: 1Co 11:22 - -- Despise ye the church of God - Ye render the sacred assembly and the place contemptible by your conduct, and ye show yourselves destitute of that re...
Despise ye the church of God - Ye render the sacred assembly and the place contemptible by your conduct, and ye show yourselves destitute of that respect which ye owe to the place set apart for Divine worship
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: 1Co 11:22 - -- And shame them that have not? - Τους μη εχοντας, Them that are poor; not them who had not victuals at that time, but those who are so ...
And shame them that have not? -
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: 1Co 11:23 - -- I have received of the Lord - It is possible that several of the people at Corinth did receive the bread and wine of the eucharist as they did the p...
I have received of the Lord - It is possible that several of the people at Corinth did receive the bread and wine of the eucharist as they did the paschal bread and wine, as a mere commemoration of an event. And as our Lord had by this institution consecrated that bread and wine, not to be the means of commemorating the deliverance from Egypt, and their joy on the account, but their deliverance from sin and death by his passion and cross; therefore the apostle states that he had received from the Lord what he delivered; viz. that the eucharistic bread and wine were to be understood of the accomplishment of that of which the paschal lamb was the type - the body broken for them, the blood shed for them
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: 1Co 11:23 - -- The Lord Jesus - took bread - See the whole of this account, collated with the parallel passages in the four Gospels, amply explained in my Discours...
The Lord Jesus - took bread - See the whole of this account, collated with the parallel passages in the four Gospels, amply explained in my Discourse on the Eucharist, and in the notes on Matthew 26.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: 1Co 11:24 - -- This do in remembrance of me - The papists believe the apostles were not ordained priests before these words. Si quis dixerit, illis verbis, hoc fac...
This do in remembrance of me - The papists believe the apostles were not ordained priests before these words. Si quis dixerit, illis verbis, hoc facite in meam commemorationem, Christum non instituisse apostolos sacerdotes, anathema sit : "If any one shall say that in these words, ‘ This do in remembrance of me,’ Christ did not ordain his apostles priests, let him be accursed."Conc. Trid. Sess. 22. Conc. 2. And he that does believe such an absurdity, on such a ground, is contemptible.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: 1Co 11:26 - -- Ye do show the Lord’ s death - As in the passover they showed forth the bondage they had been in, and the redemption they had received from it;...
Ye do show the Lord’ s death - As in the passover they showed forth the bondage they had been in, and the redemption they had received from it; so in the eucharist they showed forth the sacrificial death of Christ, and the redemption from sin derived from it.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: 1Co 11:27 - -- Whosoever shall eat - and drink - unworthily - To put a final end to controversies and perplexities relative to these words and the context, let the...
Whosoever shall eat - and drink - unworthily - To put a final end to controversies and perplexities relative to these words and the context, let the reader observe, that to eat and drink the bread and wine in the Lord’ s Supper unworthily, is to eat and drink as the Corinthians did, who ate it not in reference to Jesus Christ’ s sacrificial death; but rather in such a way as the Israelites did the passover, which they celebrated in remembrance of their deliverance from Egyptian bondage. Likewise, these mongrel Christians at Corinth used it as a kind of historical commemoration of the death of Christ; and did not, in the whole institution, discern the Lord’ s body and blood as a sacrificial offering for sin: and besides, in their celebration of it they acted in a way utterly unbecoming the gravity of a sacred ordinance. Those who acknowledge it as a sacrificial offering, and receive it in remembrance of God’ s love to them in sending his Son into the world, can neither bring damnation upon themselves by so doing, nor eat nor drink unworthily. See our translation of this verse vindicated at the end of the chapter, (1Co 11:34)
Shall be guilty of the body and blood of the Lord. If he use it irreverently, if he deny that Christ suffered unjustly, (for of some such persons the apostle must be understood to speak), then he in effect joins issue with the Jews in their condemnation and crucifixion of the Lord Jesus, and renders himself guilty of the death of our blessed Lord. Some, however, understand the passage thus: is guilty, i.e. eats and drinks unworthily, and brings on himself that punishment mentioned 1Co 11:30.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: 1Co 11:28 - -- Let a man examine himself - Let him try whether he has proper faith in the Lord Jesus; and whether he discerns the Lord’ s body; and whether he...
Let a man examine himself - Let him try whether he has proper faith in the Lord Jesus; and whether he discerns the Lord’ s body; and whether he duly considers that the bread and wine point out the crucified body and spilt blood of Christ.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: 1Co 11:29 - -- Eateth and drinketh damnation - Κριμα, Judgment, punishment; and yet this is not unto damnation, for the judgment or punishment inflicted upon...
Eateth and drinketh damnation -
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: 1Co 11:30 - -- For this cause - That they partook of this sacred ordinance without discerning the Lord’ s body; many are weak and sickly: it is hard to say wh...
For this cause - That they partook of this sacred ordinance without discerning the Lord’ s body; many are weak and sickly: it is hard to say whether these words refer to the consequences of their own intemperance or to some extraordinary disorders inflicted immediately by God himself. That there were disorders of the most reprehensible kind among these people at this sacred supper, the preceding verses sufficiently point out; and after such excesses, many might be weak and sickly among them, and many might sleep, i.e. die; for continual experience shows us that many fall victims to their own intemperance. How ever, acting as they did in this solemn and awful sacrament, they might have "provoked God to plague them with divers diseases and sundry kinds of death."Communion service.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: 1Co 11:31 - -- If we would judge ourselves - If, having acted improperly, we condemn our conduct and humble ourselves, we shall not be judged, i.e. punished for th...
If we would judge ourselves - If, having acted improperly, we condemn our conduct and humble ourselves, we shall not be judged, i.e. punished for the sin we have committed.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: 1Co 11:33 - -- When ye come together to eat - The Lord’ s Supper, tarry one for another - do not eat and drink in parties as ye have done heretofore; and do n...
When ye come together to eat - The Lord’ s Supper, tarry one for another - do not eat and drink in parties as ye have done heretofore; and do not connect it with any other meal.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: 1Co 11:34 - -- And if any man hunger - Let him not come to the house of God to eat an ordinary meal, let him eat at home - take that in his own house which is nece...
And if any man hunger - Let him not come to the house of God to eat an ordinary meal, let him eat at home - take that in his own house which is necessary for the support of his body before he comes to that sacred repast, where he should have the feeding of his soul alone in view
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: 1Co 11:34 - -- That ye come not together unto condemnation - That ye may avoid the curse that must fall on such worthless communicants as those above mentioned; an...
That ye come not together unto condemnation - That ye may avoid the curse that must fall on such worthless communicants as those above mentioned; and that ye may get that especial blessing which every one that discerns the Lord’ s body in the eucharist must receive
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: 1Co 11:34 - -- The rest will I set in order, etc. - All the other matters relative to this business, to which you have referred in your letter, I will regulate whe...
The rest will I set in order, etc. - All the other matters relative to this business, to which you have referred in your letter, I will regulate when I come to visit you; as, God permitting, I fully design. The apostle did visit them about one year after this, as is generally believed
I Have already been so very particular in this long and difficult chapter, that I have left neither room nor necessity for many supplementary observations. A few remarks are all that is requisite
1. The apostle inculcates the necessity of order and subjection, especially in the Church. Those who are impatient of rule, are generally those who wish to tyrannize. And those who are loudest in their complaints against authority, whether civil or ecclesiastical, are those who wish to have the power in their own hands, and would infallibly abuse it if they had. They alone who are willing to obey, are capable of rule; and he who can rule well, is as willing to obey as to govern. Let all be submissive and orderly; let the woman know that the man is head and protector; let the man know that Christ is his head and redeemer, and the gift of God’ s endless mercy for the salvation of a lost world
2. The apostle insisted on the woman having her head covered in the Church or Christian assembly. If he saw the manner in which Christian women now dress, and appear in the ordinances of religion, what would he think? What would he say? How could he even distinguish the Christian from the infidel? And if they who are in Christ are new creatures, and the persons who ordinarily appear in religious assemblies are really new creatures (as they profess in general to be) in Christ, he might reasonably inquire: If these are new creatures, what must have been their appearance when they were old creatures. Do we dress to be seen? And do we go to the house of God to exhibit ourselves? Wretched is that man or woman who goes to the house of God to be seen by any but God himself
3. The Lord’ s Supper may be well termed the feast of charity; how unbecoming this sacred ordinance to be the subject of dispute, party spirit, and division! Those who make it such must answer for it to God. Every man who believes in Christ as his atoning sacrifice should, as frequently as he can, receive the sacrament of the Lord’ s Supper. And every minister of Christ is bound to administer it to every man who is seeking the salvation of his soul, as well as to all believers. Let no man dare to oppose this ordinance; and let every man receive it according to the institution of Christ
4. Against the fidelity of our translation of 1Co 11:27 of this chapter, Whosoever shall eat this bread, And drink this cup unworthily, several popish writers have made heavy complaints, and accused the Protestants of wilful corruption; as both the Greek and Vulgate texts, instead of
That
But as this objection to our translation is brought forward to vindicate the withholding the cup from the laity in the Lord’ s Supper, it may be necessary to show that without the cup there can be no eucharist. With respect to the bread, our Lord had simply said, Take, eat, this is my body; but concerning the cup, he says Drink ye all of this; for as this pointed out the very essence of the institution, viz. the blood of atonement, it was necessary that each should have a particular application of it, therefore he says, Drink ye All of This. By this we are taught that the cup is essential to the sacrament of the Lord’ s Supper; so that they who deny the cup to the people, sin against God’ s institution; and they who receive not the cup, are not partakers of the body and blood of Christ. If either could without mortal prejudice be omitted, it might be the bread; but the cup as pointing out the blood poured out, i.e. the life, by which alone the great sacrificial act is performed, and remission of sins procured, is absolutely indispensable. On this ground it is demonstrable, that there is not a popish priest under heaven, who denies the cup to the people, (and they all do this), that can be said to celebrate the Lord’ s Supper at all; nor is there one of their votaries that ever received the holy sacrament. All pretension to this is an absolute farce so long as the cup, the emblem of the atoning blood, is denied. How strange is it that the very men who plead so much for the bare, literal meaning of this is my body, in the preceding verse, should deny all meaning to drink ye all of this cup, in this verse! And though Christ has, in the most positive manner, enjoined it, they will not permit one of the laity to taste it! See the whole of this argument, at large, in my Discourse on the Nature and Design of the Eucharist.
Calvin: 1Co 11:5 - -- 5.Every woman praying or prophesying Here we have the second proposition — that women ought to have their heads covered when they pray or pr...
5.Every woman praying or prophesying Here we have the second proposition — that women ought to have their heads covered when they pray or prophesy; otherwise they dishonor their head For as the man honors his head by showing his liberty, so the woman, by showing her subjection. Hence, on the other hand, if the woman uncovers her head, she shakes off subjection — involving contempt of her husband. It may seem, however, to be superfluous for Paul to forbid the woman to prophesy with her head uncovered, while elsewhere he wholly
prohibits women from speaking in the Church.
(1Ti 2:12.)
It would not, therefore, be allowable for them to prophesy even with a covering upon their head, and hence it follows that it is to no purpose that he argues here as to a covering. It may be replied, that the Apostle, by here condemning the one, does not commend the other. For when he reproves them for prophesying with their head uncovered, he at the same time does not give them permission to prophesy in some other way, but rather delays his condemnation of that vice to another passage, namely in 1Co 14:34. In this reply there is nothing amiss, though at the same time it might suit sufficiently well to say, that the Apostle requires women to show their modesty — not merely in a place in which the whole Church is assembled, but also in any more dignified assembly, either of matrons or of men, such as are sometimes convened in private houses.
For it is all one as if she were shaven He now maintains from other considerations, that it is unseemly for women to have their heads bare. Nature itself, says he, abhors it. To see a woman shaven is a spectacle that is disgusting and monstrous. Hence we infer that the woman has her hair given her for a covering Should any one now object, that her hair is enough, as being a natural covering, Paul says that it is not, for it is such a covering as requires another thing to be made use of for covering it And hence a conjecture is drawn, with some appearance of probability — that women who had beautiful hair were accustomed to uncover their heads for the purpose of showing off their beauty. It is not, therefore, without good reason that Paul, as a remedy for this vice, sets before them the opposite idea — that they be regarded as remarkable for unseemliness, rather than for what is an incentive to lust. 625
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Calvin: 1Co 11:7 - -- 7.The man ought not to cover his head, because he is the image The same question may now be proposed respecting the image, as formerly respecting th...
7.The man ought not to cover his head, because he is the image The same question may now be proposed respecting the image, as formerly respecting the head. For both sexes were created in the image of God, and Paul exhorts women no less than men to be formed anew, according to that image. The image, however, of which he is now speaking, relates to the order of marriage, and hence it belongs to the present life, and is not connected with conscience. The simple solution is this — that he does not treat here of innocence and holiness, which are equally becoming in men and women, but of the distinction, which God has conferred upon the man, so as to have superiority over the woman. In this superior order of dignity the glory of God is seen, as it shines forth in every kind of superiority.
The woman is the glory of the man There is no doubt that the woman is a distinguished ornament of the man; for it is a great honor that God has appointed her to the man as the partner of his life, and a helper to him, 626 and has made her subject to him as the body is to the head. For what Solomon affirms as to a careful wife — that she is a crown to her husband, (Pro 12:4,) is true of the whole sex, if we look to the appointment of God, which Paul here commends, showing that the woman was created for this purpose — that she might be a distinguished ornament of the man.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Calvin: 1Co 11:8 - -- 8.For the man is not from the woman He establishes by two arguments the pre-eminence, which he had assigned to men above women. The first is, tha...
8.For the man is not from the woman He establishes by two arguments the pre-eminence, which he had assigned to men above women. The first is, that as the woman derives her origin from the man, she is therefore inferior in rank. The second is, that as the woman was created for the sake of the man, she is therefore subject to him, as the work ultimately produced is to its cause. 627 That the man is the beginning of the woman and the end for which she was made, is evident from the law. (Gen 2:18.)
It is not good for a man to be alone. Let us make for him, etc.
Farther,
God took one of Adam’s ribs and formed Eve.
(Gen 2:21.)
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Calvin: 1Co 11:10 - -- 10.For this cause ought the woman to have power 628 From that authority he draws an argument 629 in favor of outward decorum. “She is subject,” s...
10.For this cause ought the woman to have power 628 From that authority he draws an argument 629 in favor of outward decorum. “She is subject,” says he, “let her then wear a token of subjection.” In the term power, there is an instance of metonymy, 630 for he means a token by which she declares herself to be under the power of her husband; and it is a covering, whether it be a robe, or a veil, 631 or any other kind of covering. 632
It is asked, whether he speaks of married women exclusively, for there are some that restrict to them what Paul here teaches, on the ground that it does not belong to virgins to be under the authority of a husband. It is however a mistake, for Paul looks beyond this — to God’s eternal law, which has made the female sex subject to the authority of men. On this account all women are born, that they may acknowledge themselves inferior in consequence of the superiority of the male sex. Otherwise it were an inconclusive argument that Paul has drawn from nature, in saying that it were not one whit more seemly for a woman to have her head uncovered than to be shaven — this being applicable to virgins also.
Because of the angels This passage is explained in various ways. As the Prophet Mal 2:7 calls priests angels of God, some are of opinion that Paul speaks of them; but the ministers of the word have nowhere that term applied to them by itself — that is, without something being added; and the meaning would be too forced. I understand it, therefore, in its proper signification. But it is asked, why it is that he would have women have their heads covered because of the angels — for what has this to do with them? Some answer: “Because they are present on occasion of the prayers of believers, and on this account are spectators of unseemliness, should there be any on such occasions.” But what need is there for philosophizing with such refinement? We know that angels are in attendance, also, upon Christ as their head, and minister to him. 633 When, therefore, women venture upon such liberties, as to usurp for themselves the token of authority, they make their baseness manifest to the angels. This, therefore, was said by way of amplifying, as if he had said, “If women uncover their heads, not only Christ, but all the angels too, will be witnesses of the outrage.” And this interpretation suits well with the Apostle’s design. He is treating here of different ranks. Now he says that, when women assume a higher place than becomes them, they gain this by it — that they discover their impudence in the view of the angels of heaven.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Calvin: 1Co 11:11 - -- 11.But neither is the man without the woman This is added partly as a check upon men, that they may not insult over women; 634 and partly as a consol...
11.But neither is the man without the woman This is added partly as a check upon men, that they may not insult over women; 634 and partly as a consolation to women, that they may not feel dissatisfied with being under subjection. “The male sex (says he) has a distinction over the female sex, with this understanding, that they ought to be connected together by mutual benevolence, for the one cannot do without the other. If they be separated, they are like the mutilated members of a mangled body. Let them, therefore, be connected with each other by the bond of mutual duty.” 635
When he says, in the Lord, he by this expression calls the attention of believers to the appointment of the Lord, while the wicked look to nothing beyond pressing necessity. 636 For profane men, if they can conveniently live unmarried, despise the whole sex, and do not consider that they are under obligations to it by the appointment and decree of God. The pious, on the other hand, acknowledge that the male sex is but the half of the human race. They ponder the meaning of that statement — God created man: male and female created he them (Gen 1:27, and Gen 5:2.) Thus they, of their own accord, acknowledge themselves to be debtors to the weaker sex. Pious women, in like manner, reflect upon their obligation. 637 Thus the man has no standing without the woman, for that would be the head severed from the body; nor has the woman without the man, for that were a body without a head. “Let, therefore, the man perform to the woman the office of the head in respect of ruling her, and let the woman perform to the man the office of the body in respect of assisting him, and that not merely in the married state, but also in celibacy; for I do not speak of cohabitation merely, but also of civil offices, for which there is occasion even in the unmarried state.” If you are inclined rather to refer this to the whole sex in general, I do not object to this, though, as Paul directs his discourse to individuals, he appears to point out the particular duty of each.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Calvin: 1Co 11:12 - -- 12.As the woman is of the man If this is one of the reasons, why the man has superiority — that the woman was taken out of him, there will be, in l...
12.As the woman is of the man If this is one of the reasons, why the man has superiority — that the woman was taken out of him, there will be, in like manner, this motive to friendly connection — that the male sex cannot maintain and preserve itself without the aid of women. For this remains a settled point — that it is not good for man to be alone (Gen 2:18.) This statement of Paul may, it is true, be viewed as referring to propagation, because human beings are propagated not by men alone, but by men and women; but I understand it as meaning this also — that the woman is a needful help to the man, inasmuch as a solitary life is not expedient for man. This decree of God exhorts us to cultivate mutual intercourse.
But all things of God God is the Source of both sexes, and hence both of them ought with humility to accept and maintain the condition which the Lord has assigned to them. Let the man exercise his authority with moderation, and not insult over the woman who has been given him as his partner. Let the woman be satisfied with her state of subjection, and not take it amiss that she is made inferior to the more distinguished sex. Otherwise they will both of them throw off the yoke of God, who has not without good reason appointed this distinction of ranks. Farther, when it is said that the man and the woman, when they are wanting in their duty to each other, are rebels against the authority of God, the statement is a more serious one than if Paul had said, that they do injury to one another.
Doth not even nature itself He again sets forth nature as the mistress of decorum, and what was at that time in common use by universal consent and custom — even among the Greeks — he speaks of as being natural, for it was not always reckoned a disgrace for men to have long hair. 638 Historical records bear, that in all countries in ancient times, that is, in the first ages, men wore long hair. Hence also the poets, in speaking of the ancients, are accustomed to apply to them the common epithet of unshorn 639 It was not until a late period that barbers began to be employed at Rome — about the time of Africanus the elder. And at the time when Paul wrote these things, the practice of having the hair shorn had not yet come into use in the provinces of Gaul or in Germany. Nay more, it would have been reckoned an unseemly thing for men, no less than for women, to be shorn or shaven; but as in Greece it was reckoned all unbecoming thing for a man to allow his hair to grow long, so that those who did so were remarked as effeminate, he reckons as nature a custom that had come to be confirmed. 640
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Calvin: 1Co 11:16 - -- 16.But if any man seem A contentious person is one whose humor inclines him to stir up disputes, and does not care what becomes of the truth. Of th...
16.But if any man seem A contentious person is one whose humor inclines him to stir up disputes, and does not care what becomes of the truth. Of this description are all who, without any necessity, abolish good and useful customs — raise disputes respecting matters that are not doubtful — who do not yield to reasonings — who cannot endure that any one should be above them. Of this description, also, are those (
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Calvin: 1Co 11:17 - -- His reproof of the fault previously noticed was but a mild and gentle admonition, because the Corinthians sinned in ignorance, so that it was proper ...
His reproof of the fault previously noticed was but a mild and gentle admonition, because the Corinthians sinned in ignorance, so that it was proper that they should readily be forgiven. Paul, too, had praised them in the outset, because they had faithfully kept his enactments. (1Co 11:2.) Now he begins to reprove them more sharply, because they offended more grievously in some things, and not through ignorance.
17. But, in warning you as to this, I do not praise. 644 For I translate it in this way, because Paul appears to have made the participle and the verb change places. 645 I am also not satisfied with the interpretation of Erasmus, who takes
He finds fault with them, then, in the first place, because they come not together for the better, — and secondly, that they come together for the worse The second, it is true, is the more serious, but even the first is not to be endured, for if we consider what is transacted in the Church, there ought never to be a coming together without some fruit. There the doctrine of God is listened to, prayers are offered up, the Sacraments are administered. The fruit of the Word is, when confidence in God and fear of him are increased in us — when progress is made in holiness of life — when we put off more and more the old man, (Col 3:9) — when we advance in newness of life, etc. (Rom 6:4.) The Sacraments have a tendency to exercise us in piety and love. The prayers, too, ought to be of use for promoting all these purposes. In addition to this, the Lord works efficaciously by his Spirit, because he wills not that his ordinances should be vain. Hence if the sacred assemblies are of no benefit to us, and we are not made better by them, it is our ingratitude that is to blame, and therefore we deserve to be reproved. For the effect of our conduct is, that those things, which, from their own nature, and from God’s appointment, ought to have been salutary, become unprofitable.
Then follows the second fault — that they come together for the worse. This is much more criminal, and yet it almost always follows the other, for if we derive no advantage from God’s benefits, he employs this method of punishing our carelessness — that we are made worse by them. It usually happens, too, that negligence gives birth to many corruptions, especially on this account, that those who do not observe the natural use of things usually fall erelong into hurtful inventions. 646
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Calvin: 1Co 11:18 - -- 18.When ye come together in the Church, I hear there are divisions Some take the words divisions and heresies, as referring to that disorder (ἀ...
18.When ye come together in the Church, I hear there are divisions Some take the words divisions and heresies, as referring to that disorder (
He says that he partly believes it, that they might not think that he charged them all with this heinous crime, and might accordingly complain, that they were groundlessly accused. In the meantime, however, he intimates that this had been brought to him not by mere vague rumor, but by credible information, such as he could not altogether discredit.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Calvin: 1Co 11:19 - -- 19.For there must be also heresies He had previously spoken of divisions (1Co 11:18.) Now he uses the term heresies, with the view of amplifying t...
19.For there must be also heresies He had previously spoken of divisions (1Co 11:18.) Now he uses the term heresies, with the view of amplifying the more, as we may infer, too, from the word also, for it is added for the sake of amplification. (
But let us see in what sense Paul employs them. I have already expressed my disapprobation of those who explain heresy as meaning the setting up of a separate table, inasmuch as the rich did not partake of their Supper along with the poor; for he had it in view to point out something more hateful. But without mentioning the opinions of others, I take schism and heresy here in the way of less and greater. Schisms, then, are either secret grudges — when we do not see that agreement which ought to subsist among the pious — when inclinations at variance with each other are at work — when every one is mightily pleased with his own way, and finds fault with everything that is done by others. Heresies are when the evil proceeds to such a pitch that open hostility is discovered, and persons deliberately divide themselves into opposite parties. Hence, in order that believers might not feel discouraged on seeing the Corinthians torn with divisions, the Apostle turns round this occasion of offense in an opposite direction, intimating that the Lord does rather by such trials make proof of his people’s constancy. A lovely consolation! “So far, says he, should we be from being troubled, or cast down, when we do not see complete unity in the Church, but on the contrary some threatenings of separation from want of proper agreement, that even if sects should start up, 650 we ought to remain firm and constant. For in this way hypocrites are detected — in this way, on the other hand, the sincerity of believers is tried. For as this gives occasion for discovering the fickleness of those who were not rooted in the Lord’s Word, and the wickedness of those who had assumed the appearance of good men, so the good afford a more signal manifestation of their constancy and sincerity.”
But observe what Paul says — there must be, for he intimates by this expression, that this state of matters does not happen by chance, but by the sure providence of God, because he has it in view to try his people, as gold in the furnace, and if it is agreeable to the mind of God, it is, consequently, expedient. At the same time, however, we must not enter into thorny disputes, or rather into labyrinths as to a fatal necessity. We know that there never will be a time when there will not be many reprobates. We know that they are governed by the spirit of Satan, and are effectually drawn away to what is evil. We know that Satan, in his activity, leaves no stone unturned with the view of breaking up the unity of the Church. From this — not from fate — comes that necessity of which Paul makes mention. 651 We know, also, that the Lord, by his admirable wisdom, turns Satan’s deadly machinations so as to promote the salvation of believers. 652 Hence comes that design of which he speaks — that the good may shine forth more conspicuously; for we ought not to ascribe this advantage to heresies, which, being evil, can produce nothing but what is evil, but to God, who, by his infinite goodness, changes the nature of things, so that those things are salutary to the elect, which Satan had contrived for their ruin. As to Chrysostom’s contending that the particle that (
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Calvin: 1Co 11:20 - -- 20.This is not to eat the Lord’s supper He now reproves the abuse that had crept in among the Corinthians as to the Lord’s Supper, in respect of ...
20.This is not to eat the Lord’s supper He now reproves the abuse that had crept in among the Corinthians as to the Lord’s Supper, in respect of their mixing up profane banquets with the sacred and spiritual feast, and that too with contempt of the poor. Paul says, that in this way it is not the Lord’s supper that is partaken of — not that a single abuse altogether set aside the sacred institution of Christ, and reduced it to nothing, but that they polluted the sacrament by observing it in a wrong way. For we are accustomed to say, in common conversation, that a thing is not done at all, if it is not done aright. Now this was no trivial abuse, as we shall afterwards see. If you understand the words is not as meaning, is not allowable, 655 the meaning will amount to the same thing — that the Corinthians were not in a state of preparation for partaking of the Lord’s supper, as being in so divided a state. What I stated a little ago, however, is more simple — that he condemns that profane admixture, which had nothing in it akin to the Lord’s Supper.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Calvin: 1Co 11:21 - -- 21.For every one of you taketh before others his own supper It is truly wonderful, and next to a miracle, 656 that Satan could have accomplished so m...
21.For every one of you taketh before others his own supper It is truly wonderful, and next to a miracle, 656 that Satan could have accomplished so much in so short a time. We are, however, admonished by this instance, how much antiquity, without reason on its side, can effect, or, in other words, how much influence a long continued custom has, while not sanctioned by a single declaration of the word of God. This, having become customary, was looked upon as lawful. Paul was then at hand to interfere. What then must have been the state of matters after the death of the Apostles? With what liberty Satan must have sported himself. 657 Yet here is the great strength of Papists: “The thing is ancient — it was done long ago — let it, therefore, have the weight of a revelation from heaven.”
It is uncertain, however, what was the origin of this abuse, or what was the occasion of its springing up so soon. Chrysostom is of opinion, that it originated in the love-feasts, 658 (
And one is hungry This was one evil in the case, that while the rich indulged themselves sumptuously, they appeared, in a manner, to reproach the poor for their poverty. The inequality he describes hyperbolically, when he says, that some are drunken and others are hungry, for some had the means of stuffing themselves well, while others had slender fare. Thus the poor were exposed to the derision of the rich, or at least they were exposed to shame. It was, therefore, an unseemly spectacle, and not in accordance with the Lord ’ s supper
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Calvin: 1Co 11:22 - -- 22.Have ye not houses ? From this we see that the Apostle was utterly dissatisfied with this custom of feasting, even though the abuse formerly menti...
22.Have ye not houses ? From this we see that the Apostle was utterly dissatisfied with this custom of feasting, even though the abuse formerly mentioned had not existed. For, though it seems allowable for the whole Church to partake at one common table, yet this, on the other hand, is wrong — to convert a sacred assembly to purposes foreign to its nature. We know for what exercises a Church should assemble — to hear doctrine, to pour forth prayers, and sing hymns to God, to observe the sacraments, 665 to make confession of their faith, and to engage in pious observances, and other exercises of piety. If anything else is done there, it is out of place. Every one has his own house appointed him for eating and drinking, and hence that is an unseemly thing in a sacred assembly.
What shall I say to you? Having fitly stated the case, he now calls them to consider, whether they are worthy to be praised, for they could not defend an abuse that was so manifest. He presses them still further, by asking — “What else could I do? Will you say that you are unjustly reproved?” Some manuscripts connect the words in this with the verb that follows — in this way: Shall I praise you ? In this I do not praise you 666 The other reading, however, is the more generally received among the Greeks, and it suits better.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Calvin: 1Co 11:23 - -- Hitherto he has been exposing the abuse; 667 now he proceeds to show what is the proper method of rectifying it. For the institution of Christ is a s...
Hitherto he has been exposing the abuse; 667 now he proceeds to show what is the proper method of rectifying it. For the institution of Christ is a sure rule, so that if you turn aside from it but a very little, you are out of the right course. Hence, as the Corinthians had deviated from this rule, he calls them back to it. It is a passage that ought to be carefully observed, as showing that there is no remedy for correcting and purging out abuses, short of a return to God’s pure institution. Thus the Lord himself — when he was discoursing respecting marriage, (Mat 19:3,) and the Scribes brought forward custom, and also the permission given by Moses — simply brings forward his Father’s institution, as being an inviolable law. When we do this at the present day, the Papists cry out, that we are leaving nothing untouched. 668 We openly demonstrate, that it is not in one point merely that they have degenerated from our Lord’s first institution, but that they have corrupted it in a thousand ways. Nothing is more manifest than that their Mass is diametrically opposed to the sacred Supper of our Lord. I go farther — we show in the plainest manner, that it is full of wicked abominations: hence there is need of reformation. We demand — what it appears Paul had recourse to — that our Lord’s institution be the common rule, to which we agree on both sides to make our appeal. This they oppose with all their might. Mark then the nature of the controversy at this day in reference to the Lord’s Supper.
23.I received from the Lord In these words he intimates, that there is no authority that is of any avail in the Church, but that of the Lord alone. “ I have not delivered to you an invention of my own: I had not, when I came to you, contrived a new kind of Supper, according to my own humor, but have Christ as my authority, from whom I received what I have delivered unto you, in the way of handing it over.” 669 Return, then, to the original source. Thus, bidding adieu to human laws, the authority of Christ will be maintained in its stability.
That night in which he was betrayed This circumstance as to time instructs us as to the design of the sacrament — that the benefit of Christ’s death may be ratified in us. For the Lord might have some time previously committed to the Apostles this covenant-seal, 670 but he waited until the time of his oblation, that the Apostles might see soon after accomplished in reality in his body, what he had represented to them in the bread and the wine Should any one infer from this, that the Supper ought, therefore, to be celebrated at night and after a bodily repast, I answer, that, in what our Lord did, we must consider what there is that he would have to be done by us. It is certain, that he did not mean to institute a kind of nightly festival, like that in honor of Ceres, 671 and farther, that it was not his design to invite his people to come to this spiritual banquet with a well-filled stomach. Such actions of Christ as are not intended for our imitation, should not be reckoned as belonging to his institution. 672 In this way, there is no difficulty in setting aside that subtilty of Papists, by which they shift off 673 what I have already stated as to the duty of maintaining and preserving Christ’s institution in its simplicity. “We will, therefore,” say they, “ not receive the Lord’s Supper except at night, and we will therefore take it — not when fasting, but after having dined.” All this, I say, is mere trifling; for it is easy to distinguish what our Lord did, in order that we might imitate it, or rather what he did with the view of commanding us to do the like.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Calvin: 1Co 11:24 - -- 24.Having given thanks Paul observes elsewhere, that every gift that we receive from the hand of God is sanctified to us by the word and prayer. (1T...
24.Having given thanks Paul observes elsewhere, that every gift that we receive from the hand of God
is sanctified to us by the word and prayer. (1Ti 4:5.)
Accordingly, we nowhere read that the Lord tasted bread along with his disciples, but there is mention made of his giving thanks, (Joh 6:23,) by which example he has assuredly instructed us to do the like. This giving of thanks, however, has a reference to something higher, for Christ gives thanks to the Father for his mercy 674 towards the human race, and the inestimable benefit of redemption; and he invites us, by his example, to raise up our minds as often as we approach the sacred table, to an acknowledgment of the boundless love of God towards us, and to have our minds kindled up to true gratitude. 675
Take, eat, this is my body As Paul designed here to instruct us in a few words as to the right use of the sacrament, it is our duty to consider attentively 676 what he sets before us, and allow nothing to pass unobserved, inasmuch as he says nothing but what is exceedingly necessary to be known, and worthy of the closest attention. In the first place, we must take notice, that Christ here distributes the bread among the Apostles, that all may partake of it in common, and thus every one may receive his portion, that there may be an equal participation among all. Accordingly, when there is not a table in common prepared for all the pious — where they are not invited to the breaking of bread in common, and where, in fine, believers do not mutually participate, it is to no purpose that the name of the Lord ’ s Supper is laid claim to.
But for what purpose 677 are the people called to mass, unless it be that they may come away empty from an unmeaning show? 678 It has, therefore, nothing in unison with the supper. Hence, too, we infer that Christ’s promise is no more applicable to the mass than to the feast of the Salii; 679 for when Christ promises that he will give us his body, he at the same time commands us to take and eat of the bread Hence, unless we obey this command, it is to no purpose that we glory in his promise. To explain this more familiarly in other words — the promise is annexed to the commandment in a conditional way, as it were: hence it has its accomplishment only if the condition also is accomplished. For example, it is written, Call upon me; I will answer thee (Psa 91:15.) It is our part to obey the command of God, that he may accomplish for us what he promises; otherwise we shut ourselves out from the accomplishment of it. 680
What do Papists do? They neglect participation, and consecrate the bread for a totally different purpose, and in the meantime they boast that they have the Lord’s body. While, by a wicked divorce, they
put asunder those things which Christ has joined together,
(Mat 19:6,)
it is manifest that their boasting is vain. Hence, whenever they bring forward the clause — This is my body, we must retort upon them the one that immediately precedes it — Take and eat For the meaning of the words is: “By participating in the breaking of bread, according to the order and observance which I have prescribed, you shall be participants also in my body.” Hence, when an individual eats of it by himself, the promise in that case goes for nothing. Besides, we are taught in these words what the Lord would have us do. Take, says he. Hence those that offer a sacrifice to God have some other than Christ as their authority, for we are not instructed in these words to perform a sacrifice.
But what do Papists say as to their mass? At first they were so impudent as to maintain, that it was truly and properly called a sacrifice. Now, however, they admit that it is indeed a commemorative sacrifice, but in such a way, that the benefit of redemption is, through means of their daily oblation, 681 applied to the living and the dead. However that may be, they present the appearance of a sacrifice. 682 In the first place, there is rashness in this, as being without any command from Christ; but there is a still more serious error involved in it — that, while Christ appointed the Supper for this purpose, that we might take and eat, they pervert it to a totally different use.
This is my body I shall not recount the unhappy contests that have tried the Church in our times as to the meaning of these words. Nay rather, would to God that we could bury the remembrance of them in perpetual oblivion! I shall state, first of all, sincerely and without disguise, and then farther, I shall state freely (as I am wont to do) what my views are. Christ calls the bread his body; for I set aside, without any disputation, that absurd contrivance, that our Lord did not exhibit the bread to the Apostles, but his body, which they beheld with their eyes, for it immediately follows — This cup is the New Testament in my blood Let us regard it then as beyond all controversy that Christ is here speaking of the bread. Now the question is — “In what sense?” That we may elicit the true meaning, we must hold that the expression is figurative; for, assuredly, to deny this is exceedingly dishonest. 683 Why then is the term body applied to the bread? All, I think, will allow that it is for the same reason that John calls the Holy Spirit a dove (Joh 1:32.) Thus far we are agreed. Now the reason why the Spirit was so called was this — that he had appeared in the form of a dove. Hence the name of the Spirit is transferred to the visible sign. Why should we not maintain that there is here a similar instance of metonymy, and that the term body is applied to the bread, as being the sign and symbol of it? If any are of a different opinion they will forgive me; but it appears to me to be an evidence of a contentious spirit, to dispute pertinaciously on this point. I lay it down, then, as a settled point, that there is here a sacramental form of expression, 684 in which the Lord gives to the sign the name of the thing signified.
We must now proceed farther, and inquire as to the reason of the metonymy. Here I reply, that the name of the thing signified is not applied to the sign simply as being a representation of it, but rather as being a symbol of it, 685 by which the reality is presented to us. For I do not allow the force of those comparisons which some borrow from profane or earthly things; for there is a material difference between them and the sacraments of our Lord. The statue of Hercules is called Hercules, but what have we there but a bare, empty representation? On the other hand the Spirit is called a dove, as being a sure pledge of the invisible presence of the Spirit. Hence the bread is Christ ’ s body, because it assuredly testifies, that the body which it represents is held forth to us, or because the Lord, by holding out to us that symbol, gives us at the same time his own body; for Christ is not a deceiver, to mock us with empty representations. 686 Hence it is regarded by me as beyond all controversy, that the reality is here conjoined with the sign; or, in other words, that we do not less truly become participants in Christ’s body in respect of spiritual efficacy, than we partake of the bread.
We must now discuss the manner. Papists hold forth to us their system of transubstantiation: they allege that, when the act of consecration has been gone through, the substance of the bread no longer exists, and that nothing remains but the accidents. 687 To this contrivance we oppose — not merely the plain words of Scripture, but the very nature of the sacraments. For what is the meaning of the supper, if there is no correspondence between the visible sign and the spiritual reality? They would have the sign to be a false and delusive appearance of bread. What then will the thing signified be, but a mere imagination? Hence, if there must be a correspondence between the sign and its reality, it is necessary that the bread be real — not imaginary — to represent Christ’s real body. Besides, Christ’s body is here given us not simply, but as food. Now it is not by any means the color of the bread that nourishes us, but the substance. In fine, if we would have reality in the thing itself, there must be no deception in the sign.
Rejecting then the dream of Papists, let us see in what manner Christ’s body is given to us. Some explain, that it is given to us, when we are made partakers of all the blessings which Christ has procured for us in his body — when, I say, we by faith embrace Christ as crucified for us, and raised up from the dead, and in this way are effectually made partakers of all his benefits. As for those who are of this opinion, I have no objection to their holding such a view. As for myself, I acknowledge, that it is only when we obtain Christ himself, that we come to partake of Christ’s benefits. He is, however, obtained, I affirm, not only when we believe that he was made an offering for us, but when he dwells in us — when he is one with us — when we are members of his flesh, (Eph 5:30,) — when, in fine, we are incorporated with him (so to speak) into one life and substance. Besides, I attend to the import of the words, for Christ does not simply present to us the benefit of his death and resurrection, but the very body in which he suffered and rose again. I conclude, that Christ’s body is really, (as the common expression is,) — that is, truly given to us in the Supper, to be wholesome food for our souls. I use the common form of expression, but my meaning is, that our souls are nourished by the substance of the body, that we may truly be made one with him, or, what amounts to the same thing, that a life-giving virtue from Christ’s flesh is poured into us by the Spirit, though it is at a great distance from us, and is not mixed with us. 688
There now remains but one difficulty — how is it possible that his body, which is in heaven, is given to us here upon earth? Some imagine that Christ’s body is infinite, and is not confined to any one space, but fills heaven and earth, (Jer 23:24,) like his Divine essence. This fancy is too absurd to require refutation. The Schoolmen dispute with more refinement as to his glorious body. Their whole doctrine, however, reduces itself to this — that Christ is to be sought after in the bread, as if he were included in it. Hence it comes, that the minds of men behold the bread with wonderment, and adore it in place of Christ. Should any one ask them whether they adore the bread, or the appearance of it, they will confidently agree that they do not, but, in the mean time, when about to adore Christ, they turn to the bread. They turn, I say, not merely with their eyes, and their whole body, but even with the thoughts of the heart. Now what is this but unmixed idolatry? But that participation in the body of Christ, which, I affirm, is presented to us in the Supper, does not require a local presence, nor the descent of Christ, nor infinite extension, 689 nor anything of that nature, for the Supper being a heavenly action, there is no absurdity in saying, that Christ, while remaining in heaven, is received by us. For as to his communicating himself to us, that is effected through the secret virtue of his Holy Spirit, which can not merely bring together, but join in one, things that are separated by distance of place, and far remote.
But, in order that we may be capable of this participation, we must rise heavenward. Here, therefore, faith must be our resource, when all the bodily senses have failed. When I speak of faith, I do not mean any sort of opinion, resting on human contrivances, as many, boasting of faith on all occasions, run grievously wild on this point. What then? You see bread — nothing more — but you learn that it is a symbol 690 of Christ’s body. Do not doubt that the Lord accomplishes what his words intimate — that the body, which thou dost not at all behold, is given to thee, as a spiritual repast. It seems incredible, that we should be nourished by Christ’s flesh, which is at so great a distance from us. Let us bear in mind, that it is a secret and wonderful work of the Holy Spirit, which it were criminal to measure by the standard of our understanding. “In the meantime, however, drive away gross imaginations, which would keep thee from looking beyond the bread. Leave to Christ the true nature of flesh, and do not, by a mistaken apprehension, extend his body over heaven and earth: do not divide him into different parts by thy fancies, and do not adore him in this place and that, according to thy carnal apprehension. Allow him to remain in his heavenly glory, and aspire thou thither, 691 that he may thence communicate himself to thee.” These few things will satisfy those that are sound and modest. As for the curious, I would have them look somewhere else for the means of satisfying their appetite.
Which is broken for you Some explain this as referring to the distribution of the bread, because it was necessary that Christ’s body should remain entire, as it had been predicted, (Exo 12:46,) A bone of him shall not be broken As for myself — while I acknowledge that Paul makes an allusion to the breaking of bread, yet I understand the word broken as used here for sacrificed — not, indeed, with strict propriety, but at the same time without any absurdity. For although no bone was broken, yet the body itself having been subjected, first of all, to so many tortures and inflictions, and afterwards to the punishment of death in the most cruel form, cannot be said to have been uninjured. This is what Paul means by its being broken This, however, is the second clause of the promise, which ought not to be passed over slightly. For the Lord does not present his body to us simply, and without any additional consideration, but as having been sacrificed for us. The first clause, then, intimates, that the body is presented to us: this second clause teaches us, what advantage we derive from it — that we are partakers of redemption, and the benefit of his sacrifice is applied to us. Hence the Supper is a mirror which represents to us Christ crucified, so that no one can profitably and advantageously receive the supper, but the man who embraces Christ crucified.
Do this in remembrance of me Hence the Supper is a memorial, (
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Calvin: 1Co 11:25 - -- 25.The cup, when he had supped The Apostle seems to intimate, that there was some interval of time between the distribution of the bread and that o...
25.The cup, when he had supped The Apostle seems to intimate, that there was some interval of time between the distribution of the bread and that of the cup, and it does not quite appear from the Evangelists whether the whole of the transaction was continuous. 694 This, however, is of no great moment, for it may be that the Lord delivered in the meantime some address, after distributing the bread, and before giving the cup. As, however, he did or said nothing that was not in harmony with the sacrament, we need not say that the administration of it was disturbed or interrupted. I would not, however, render it as Erasmus does — supper, being ended, for, in a matter of so great importance, ambiguity ought to be avoided.
This cup is the New Testament What is affirmed as to the cup, is applicable also to the bread; and thus, by this form of expression, he intimates what he had before stated more briefly — that the bread is the body. For it is so to us, that it may be a testament in his body, that is, a covenant, which has been once confirmed by the offering up of his body, and is now confirmed by eating, when believers feast upon that sacrifice. Accordingly, while Paul and Luke use the words — testament in the blood, Matthew and Mark employ the expression — blood of the testament, which amounts to the same thing. For the blood was poured out to reconcile us to God, and now we drink of it in a spiritual sense, that we may be partakers of reconciliation. Hence, in the Supper, we have both a covenant, and a confirmatory pledge of the covenant.
I shall speak in the Epistle to the Hebrews, if the Lord shall allow me opportunity, as to the word testament It is well known, however, that sacraments receive that name, from being testimonies to us of the divine will, to confirm 695 it in our minds. For as a covenant is entered into among men with solemn rites, so it is in the same manner that the Lord deals with us. Nor is it without strict propriety that this term is employed; for in consequence of the connection between the word and the sign, the covenant of the Lord is really included in the sacraments, and the term covenant has a reference or relation to us. This will be of no small importance for understanding the nature of the sacraments; for if they are covenants, then they contain promises, by which consciences may be roused up to an assurance of salvation. Hence it follows, that they are not merely outward signs of profession before men, but are inwardly, too, helps to faith.
This do, as often as ye drink Christ, then, has appointed a two-fold sign in the Supper.
What God hath joined together let not man put asunder.
(Mat 19:6.)
To distribute, therefore, the bread without the cup, is to man Christ’s institution. 696 For we hear Christ’s words. As he commands us to eat of the bread, so he commands us to drink of the cup To obey the one half of the command and neglect the other half — what is this but to make sport of his commandment? And to keep back the people from that cup, which Christ sets before all, after first drinking of it, as is done under the tyranny of the Pope — who can deny that this is diabolical presumption? As to the cavil that they bring forward — that Christ spoke merely to the Apostles, and not to the common people — it is exceedingly childish, and is easily refuted from this passage — for Paul here addresses himself to men and women indiscriminately, and to the whole body of the Church. He declares that he
had delivered this to them agreeably to the commandment
of the Lord. (1Co 11:23.)
By what spirit will those pretend to be actuated, who have dared to set aside this ordinance? Yet even at this day this gross abuse is obstinately defended; and what occasion is there for wonder, if they endeavor impudently to excuse, by words and writings, what they so cruelly maintain by fire and sword?
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Calvin: 1Co 11:26 - -- 26.For as often as ye shall eat Paul now adds what kind of remembrance ought to be cherished — that is, with thanksgiving; not that the remembrance...
26.For as often as ye shall eat Paul now adds what kind of remembrance ought to be cherished — that is, with thanksgiving; not that the remembrance consists wholly in confession with the mouth; for the chief thing is, that the efficacy of Christ’s death be sealed in our consciences; but this knowledge should stir us up to a confession in respect of praise, so as to declare before men what we feel inwardly before God. The Supper then is (so to speak) a kind of memorial, which must always remain in the Church, until the last coming of Christ; and it has been appointed for this purpose, that Christ may put us in mind of the benefit of his death, and that we may recognize it 697 before men. Hence it has the name of the Eucharist. 698 If, therefore, you would celebrate the Supper aright, you must bear in mind, that a profession of your faith is required from you. Hence we see how shamelessly those mock God, who boast that they have in the mass something of the nature of the Supper. For what is the mass? They confess (for I am not speaking of Papists, but of the pretended followers of Nicodemus) that it is full of abominable superstitions. By outward gesture they give a pretended approval of them. What kind of showing forth of the death of Christ is this? Do they not rather renounce it?
Until he come As we always need a help of this kind, so long as we are in this world, Paul intimates that this commemoration has been given us in charge, until Christ come to judgment. For as he is not present with us in a visible form, it is necessary for us to have some symbol of his presence, by which our minds may exercise themselves.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Calvin: 1Co 11:27 - -- 27.Therefore he who shall eat this bread unworthily If the Lord requires gratitude from us in the receiving of this sacrament — if he would have us...
27.Therefore he who shall eat this bread unworthily If the Lord requires gratitude from us in the receiving of this sacrament — if he would have us acknowledge his grace with the heart, and publish it with the mouth — that man will not go unpunished, who has put insult upon him rather than honor; for the Lord will not allow his commandment to be despised. Now, if we would catch the meaning of this declaration, we must know what it is to eat unworthily Some restrict it to the Corinthians, and the abuse that had crept in among them, but I am of opinion that Paul here, according to his usual manner, passed on from the particular case to a general statement, or from one instance to an entire class. There was one fault that prevailed among the Corinthians. He takes occasion from this to speak of every kind of faulty administration or reception of the Supper. “ God, ” says he, “ will not allow this sacrament to be profaned without punishing it severely.”
To eat unworthily, then, is to pervert the pure and right use of it by our abuse of it. Hence there are various degrees of this unworthiness, so to speak; and some offend more grievously, others less so. Some fornicator, perhaps, or perjurer, or drunkard, or cheat, (1Co 5:11,) intrudes himself without repentance. As such downright contempt is a token of wanton insult against Christ, there can be no doubt that such a person, whoever he is, receives the Supper to his own destruction. Another, perhaps, will come forward, who is not addicted to any open or flagrant vice, but at the same time not so prepared in heart as became him. As this carelessness or negligence is a sign of irreverence, it is also deserving of punishment from God. As, then, there are various degrees of unworthy participation, so the Lord punishes some more slightly; on others he inflicts severer punishment.
Now this passage gave rise to a question, which some afterwards agitated with too much keenness — whether the unworthy really partake of the Lord’s body? For some were led, by the heat of controversy, so far as to say, that it was received indiscriminately by the good and the bad; and many at this day maintain pertinaciously, and most clamorously, that in the first Supper Peter received no more than Judas. It is, indeed, with reluctance, that I dispute keenly with any one on this point, which is (in my opinion) not an essential one; but as others allow themselves, without reason, to pronounce, with a magisterial air, whatever may seem good to them, and to launch out thunderbolts upon every one that mutters anything to the contrary, we will be excused, if we calmly adduce reasons in support of what we reckon to be true.
I hold it, then, as a settled point, and will not allow myself to be driven from it, that Christ cannot be disjoined from his Spirit. Hence I maintain, that his body is not received as dead, or even inactive, disjoined from the grace and power of his Spirit. I shall not occupy much time in proving this statement. Now in what way could the man who is altogether destitute of a living faith and repentance, having nothing of the Spirit of Christ, 699 receive Christ himself? Nay more, as he is entirely under the influence of Satan and sin, how will he be capable of receiving Christ? While, therefore, I acknowledge that there are some who receive Christ truly in the Supper, and yet at the same time unworthily, as is the case with many weak persons, yet I do not admit, that those who bring with them a mere historical faith, 700 without a lively feeling of repentance and faith, receive anything but the sign. For I cannot endure to maim Christ, 701 and I shudder at the absurdity of affirming that he gives himself to be eaten by the wicked in a lifeless state, as it were. Nor does Augustine mean anything else when he says, that the wicked receive Christ merely in the sacrament, which he expresses more clearly elsewhere, when he says that the other Apostles ate the bread — the Lord; but Judas only the bread of the Lord 702
But here it is objected, that the efficacy of the sacraments does not depend upon the worthiness of men, and that nothing is taken away from the promises of God, or falls to the ground, through the wickedness of men. This I acknowledge, and accordingly I add in express terms, that Christ’s body is presented to the wicked no less than to the good, and this is enough so far as concerns the efficacy of the sacrament and the faithfulness of God. For God does not there represent in a delusive manner, to the wicked, the body of his Son, but presents it in reality; nor is the bread a bare sign to them, but a faithful pledge. As to their rejection of it, that does not impair or alter anything as to the nature of the sacrament.
It remains, that we give a reply to the statement of Paul in this passage. “Paul represents the unworthy as guilty, inasmuch as they do not discern the Lord’s body: it follows, that they receive his body.” I deny the inference; for though they reject it, yet as they profane it and treat it with dishonor when it is presented to them, they are deservedly held guilty; for they do, as it were, cast it upon the ground, and trample it under their feet. Is such sacrilege trivial? Thus I see no difficulty in Paul’s words, provided you keep in view what God presents and holds out to the wicked — not what they receive.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Calvin: 1Co 11:28 - -- 28.But let a man examine himself An exhortation drawn from the foregoing threatening. “ If those that eat unworthily are guilty of the body and...
28.But let a man examine himself An exhortation drawn from the foregoing threatening. “ If those that eat unworthily are guilty of the body and blood of the Lord, then let no man approach who is not properly and duly prepared. Let every one, therefore, take heed to himself, that he may not fall into this sacrilege through idleness or carelessness.” But now it is asked, what sort of examination, that ought to be to which Paul exhorts us. Papists make it consist in auricular confession. They order all that are to receive the Supper, to examine their life carefully and anxiously, that they may unburden all their sins in the ear of the priest. Such is their preparation! 703 I maintain, however, that this holy examination of which Paul speaks, is widely different from torture. Those persons, 704 after having tortured themselves with reflection for a few hours, and making the priest — such as he is — privy to their vileness, 705 imagine that they have done their duty. It is an examination of another sort that Paul here requires — one of such a kind as may accord with the legitimate use of the sacred Supper.
You see here a method that is most easily apprehended. If you would wish to use aright the benefit afforded by Christ, bring faith and repentance. As to these two things, therefore, the trial must be made, if you would come duly prepared. Under repentance I include love; for the man who has learned to renounce himself, that he may give himself up wholly to Christ and his service, will also, without doubt, carefully maintain that unity which Christ has enjoined. At the same time, it is not a perfect faith or repentance that is required, as some, by urging beyond due bounds, a perfection that can nowhere be found, would shut out for ever from the Supper every individual of mankind. If, however, thou aspirest after the righteousness of God with the earnest desire of thy mind, and, trembled under a view of thy misery, dost wholly lean upon Christ’s grace, and rest upon it, know that thou art a worthy guest to approach the table — worthy I mean in this respect, that the Lord does not exclude thee, though in another point of view there is something in thee that is not as it ought to be. For faith, when it is but begun, makes those worthy who were unworthy.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Calvin: 1Co 11:29 - -- 29.He who shall eat unworthily, eateth judgment to himself He had previously pointed out in express terms the heinousness of the crime, when he said ...
29.He who shall eat unworthily, eateth judgment to himself He had previously pointed out in express terms the heinousness of the crime, when he said that those who should eat unworthily would be guilty of the body and blood of the Lord Now he alarms them, by denouncing punishment; 706 for there are many that are not affected with the sin itself; unless they are struck down by the judgment of God. This, then, he does, when he declares that this food, otherwise health-giving, will turn out to their destruction, and will be converted into poison to those that eat unworthily
He adds the reasons because they distinguish not the Lord’s body, that is, as a sacred thing from a profane. “They handle the sacred body of Christ with unwashed hands, (Mar 7:2,) 707 nay more, as if it were a thing of nought, they consider not how great is the value of it. 708 They will therefore pay the penalty of so dreadful a profanation.” Let my readers keep in mind what I stated a little ago, that the body 709 is presented to them, though their unworthiness deprives them of a participation in it.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Calvin: 1Co 11:30 - -- 30.For this cause, etc. After having treated in a general way of unworthy eating, and of the kind of punishment that awaits those who pollute this s...
30.For this cause, etc. After having treated in a general way of unworthy eating, and of the kind of punishment that awaits those who pollute this sacrament, he now instructs the Corinthians as to the chastisement which they were at that time enduring. It is not known whether a pestilence was raging there at that time, or whether they were laboring under other kinds of disease. However it may have been as to this, we infer from Paul’s words, that the Lord had sent some scourge upon them for their correction. Nor does Paul merely conjecture, that it is on that account that they are punished, but he affirms it as a thing that was perfectly well known by him. He says, then, that many lay sick — that many were kept long in a languishing condition, and that many had died, in consequence of that abuse of the Supper, because they had offended God. By this he intimates, that by diseases and other chastisements from God, we are admonished to think of our sins; for God does not afflict us without good reason, for he takes no pleasure in our afflictions.
The subject is a copious and ample one; but let it suffice to advert to it here in a single word. If in Paul’s times an ordinary abuse of the Supper 710 could kindle the wrath of God against the Corinthians, so that he punished them thus severely, what ought we to think as to the state of matters at the present day? We see, throughout the whole extent of Popery, not merely horrid profanations of the Supper, but even a sacrilegious abomination set up in its room. In the first place, it is prostituted to filthy lucre (1Ti 3:8) and merchandise. Secondly, it is maimed, by taking away the use of the cup. Thirdly, it is changed into another aspect, 711 by its having become customary for one to partake of his own feast separately, participation being done away. 712 Fourthly, there is there no explanation of the meaning of the sacrament, but a mumbling that would accord better with a magical incantation, or the detestable sacrifices of the Gentiles, than with our Lord’s institution. Fifthly, there is an endless number of ceremonies, abounding partly with trifles, partly with superstition, and consequently manifest pollutions. Sixthly, there is the diabolical invention of sacrifice, which contains an impious blasphemy against the death of Christ. Seventhly, it is fitted to intoxicate miserable men with carnal confidence, while they present it to God as if it were an expiation, and think that by this charm they drive off everything hurtful, and that without faith and repentance. Nay more, while they trust that they are armed against the devil and death, and are fortified against God by a sure defense, they venture to sin with much more freedom, 713 and become more obstinate. Eighthly, an idol is there adored in the room of Christ. In short, it is filled with all kinds of abomination. 714
Nay even among ourselves, who have the pure administration of the Supper restored to us, 715 in virtue of a return, as it were, from captivity, 716 how much irreverence! How much hypocrisy on the part of many! What a disgraceful mixture, while, without any discrimination, wicked and openly abandoned persons intrude themselves, such as no man of character and decency would admit to common intercourse! 717 And yet after all, we wonder how it comes that there are so many wars, so many pestilences, so many failures of the crop, so many disasters and calamities — as if the cause were not manifest! And assuredly, we must not expect a termination to our calamities, until we have removed the occasion of them, by correcting our faults.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Calvin: 1Co 11:31 - -- 31.For if we would judge ourselves Here we have another remarkable statement — that God does not all of a sudden become enraged against us, so as t...
31.For if we would judge ourselves Here we have another remarkable statement — that God does not all of a sudden become enraged against us, so as to inflict punishment immediately upon our sinning, but that, for the most part, it is owing to our carelessness, that he is in a manner constrained to punish us, when he sees that we are in a careless and drowsy state, and are flattering ourselves in our sins. 718 Hence we either avert, or mitigate impending punishment, if we first call ourselves to account, and, actuated by a spirit of repentance, deprecate the anger of God by inflicting punishment voluntarily upon ourselves. 719 In short, believers anticipate, by repentance, the judgment of God, and there is no other remedy, by which they may obtain absolution in the sight of God, but by voluntarily condemning themselves
You must not, however, apprehend, as Papists are accustomed to do, that there is here a kind of transaction between us and God, as if, by inflicting punishment upon ourselves of our own accord, we rendered satisfaction to him, and did, in a manner, redeem ourselves from his hand. We do not, therefore, anticipate the judgment of God, on the ground of our bringing any compensation to appease him. The reason is this — because God, when he chastises us, has it in view to shake us out of our drowsiness, and arouse us to repentance. If we do this of our own accord, there is no longer any reason, why he should proceed to inflict his judgment upon us. If, however, any one, after having begun to feel displeased with himself, and meditate repentance, is, nevertheless, still visited with God’s chastisements, let us know that his repentance is not so valid or sure, as not to require some chastisement to be sent upon him, by which it may be helped forward to a fuller development. Mark how repentance wards off the judgment of God by a suitable remedy — not, however, by way of compensation.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Calvin: 1Co 11:32 - -- 32.But when we are judged Here we have a consolation that is exceedingly necessary; for if any one in affliction thinks that God is angry with him, h...
32.But when we are judged Here we have a consolation that is exceedingly necessary; for if any one in affliction thinks that God is angry with him, he will rather be discouraged than excited to repentance. Paul, accordingly, says, that God is angry with believers in such a way as not in the meantime to be forgetful of his mercy: nay more, that it is on this account particularly that he punishes them — that he may consult their welfare. It is an inestimable consolation 720 — that the punishments by which our sins are chastened are evidences, not of God’s anger for our destruction, but rather of his paternal love, and are at the same time of assistance towards our salvation, for God is angry with us as his sons, whom he will not leave to perish.
When he says — that we may not be condemned with the world, he intimates two things. The first is, that the children of this world, while they sleep on quietly and securely in their delights, 721 are fattened up, like hogs, for the day of slaughter (Jer 12:3.) For though the Lord sometimes invites the wicked, also, to repentance by his chastisements, yet he often passes them over as strangers, 722 and allows them to rush on with impunity, until they have filled up the measure of their final condemnation. (Gen 15:16.) This privilege, therefore, belongs to believers exclusively — that by punishments they are called back from destruction. The second thing is this — that chastisements are necessary remedies for believers, for otherwise they, too, would rush on to everlasting destruction, 723 were they not restrained by temporal punishment.
These considerations should lead us not merely to patience, so as to endure with equanimity the troubles that are assigned to us by God, but also to gratitude, that, giving thanks to God our Father, we may resign ourselves 724 to his discipline by a willing subjection. They are also useful to us in various ways; for they cause our afflictions to be salutary to us, while they train us up for mortification of the flesh, and a pious abasement — they accustom us to obedience to God — they convince us of our own weakness, they kindle up in our minds fervency in prayer — they exercise hope, so that at length whatever there is of bitterness in them is all swallowed up in spiritual joy.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Calvin: 1Co 11:33 - -- 33.Wherefore, my brethren From the discussion of a general doctrine, he returns to the particular subject with which he had set out, and comes to thi...
33.Wherefore, my brethren From the discussion of a general doctrine, he returns to the particular subject with which he had set out, and comes to this conclusion, that equality must be observed in the Lord’s Supper, that there may be a real participation, as there ought to be, and that they may not celebrate every one his own supper; and farther, that this sacrament ought not to be mixed up with common feasts.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Calvin: 1Co 11:34 - -- 34.The rest I will set in order when I come It is probable, that there were some things in addition, which it would be of advantage to put into bette...
34.The rest I will set in order when I come It is probable, that there were some things in addition, which it would be of advantage to put into better order, but as they were of less importance, the Apostle delays the correction of them until his coming among them. It may be, at the same time, that there was nothing of this nature; but as one knows better what is necessary when he is present to see, Paul reserves to himself the liberty of arranging matters when present, according as occasion may require. Papists arm themselves against us with this buckler, too, for defending their mass For they interpret this to be the setting in order which Paul here promises — as if he would have taken the liberty 725 of overturning that eternal appointment of Christ, which he here so distinctly approves of! For what resemblance does the mass bear to Christ’s institution? But away with such trifles, as it is certain that Paul speaks only of outward decorum. As this is put in the power of the Church, so it ought to be arranged according to the condition of times, places, and persons.
Defender: 1Co 11:7 - -- This section (1Co 11:2-16) has to do with church order as an extension of the divine order in the basic institution of the family. Women, in keeping w...
This section (1Co 11:2-16) has to do with church order as an extension of the divine order in the basic institution of the family. Women, in keeping with their divinely established subordinate role (subordinate in role, not in importance or essence), appropriately should indicate this by a covering on their heads - the most suitable covering being long hair (1Co 11:15). An additional shawl, hat or other covering, while appropriate, is not necessary. Men, however, in their leadership role, are to leave their heads uncovered in the church (short hair, no hat), as symbolic of their direct openness to their own head, which is Christ. Both men and women are created in God's image (Gen 1:27), but that image is especially transmitted, as it were, from father to son (Gen 5:3). The woman shares the divine image in her father and in her husband, as reflected from the formation of the body of the first woman from that of the first man."
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Defender: 1Co 11:8 - -- Ever since Adam, men (and women) have been born of women. But the first woman was made from man (Gen 2:21-24). Here (as in Rom 5:12-19 and other passa...
Ever since Adam, men (and women) have been born of women. But the first woman was made from man (Gen 2:21-24). Here (as in Rom 5:12-19 and other passages) the New Testament draws important doctrinal inferences from a literal acceptance of the creation record in Genesis. The standard evolutionary scenario for the origin of men and women makes no sense in this context. The man and the woman were uniquely created by God, not evolved by chance from ape-like progenitors (1Co 11:9)."
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Defender: 1Co 11:10 - -- Angels are "sent forth to minister for them who shall be heirs of salvation" (Heb 1:14) and are intensely interested in the progress of the gospel and...
Angels are "sent forth to minister for them who shall be heirs of salvation" (Heb 1:14) and are intensely interested in the progress of the gospel and the people in the churches (1Pe 1:12; Eph 3:10). Evidently every true church has been assigned one or more angels to try to guard and guide it (note the seven letters from Christ to the churches, recorded in Revelation 2 and 3, each addressed to "the angel of the church" - Rev 2:1). Paul was reminding the women in the Corinthian church to keep the sign of "power" (or "authority") on their heads, in view of the invisible presence of angels observing the church and its congregation."
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Defender: 1Co 11:14 - -- Although there is no specific definition here of how long is "long," the context indicates that there should be a clear distinction between the long, ...
Although there is no specific definition here of how long is "long," the context indicates that there should be a clear distinction between the long, beautiful hair of women and the short hair of men. The modern unisex fad, with men wearing long hair, earrings and other traditionally feminine accoutrements - especially when taken up by professedly Christian men - seems to be one more sign of rebellion against our Creator."
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Defender: 1Co 11:30 - -- "Sleep" is used as a euphemism for death only in the case of Christians (1Th 4:13; 1Co 15:51). Persistent or unconfessed sin by a Christian, especiall...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Defender: 1Co 11:31 - -- Self-judgment is an action encouraged by the Lord's Supper and is far better than being chastened by the Lord. But even the latter is far better than ...
Self-judgment is an action encouraged by the Lord's Supper and is far better than being chastened by the Lord. But even the latter is far better than being judged with the ungodly world."
TSK -> 1Co 11:5; 1Co 11:6; 1Co 11:7; 1Co 11:8; 1Co 11:9; 1Co 11:10; 1Co 11:11; 1Co 11:12; 1Co 11:13; 1Co 11:14; 1Co 11:15; 1Co 11:16; 1Co 11:17; 1Co 11:18; 1Co 11:19; 1Co 11:20; 1Co 11:21; 1Co 11:22; 1Co 11:23; 1Co 11:24; 1Co 11:25; 1Co 11:26; 1Co 11:27; 1Co 11:28; 1Co 11:29; 1Co 11:30; 1Co 11:31; 1Co 11:32; 1Co 11:34
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
TSK: 1Co 11:7 - -- he is : Gen 1:26, Gen 1:27, Gen 5:1, Gen 9:6; Psa 8:6; Jam 3:9
but : 1Co 11:3; Gen 3:16
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
TSK: 1Co 11:10 - -- power : That is, a covering in sign that she is under the power of her husband. Εξουσια [Strong’ s G1849], appears here to be used for...
power : That is, a covering in sign that she is under the power of her husband.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
TSK: 1Co 11:16 - -- seem : 1Ti 6:3, 1Ti 6:4
such : Act 21:21, Act 21:24
the churches : 1Co 7:17, 1Co 14:33, 1Co 14:34, 1Co 16:1; 1Th 2:14
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
TSK: 1Co 11:17 - -- I praise : 1Co 11:2, 1Co 11:22; Lev 19:17; Pro 27:5; Rom 13:3; 1Pe 2:14
that ye : 1Co 11:20,1Co 11:34, 1Co 14:23, 1Co 14:26; Isa 1:13, Isa 1:14, Isa 5...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
TSK: 1Co 11:18 - -- I hear : 1Co 1:10-12, 1Co 3:3, 1Co 5:1, 1Co 6:1
divisions : or, schisms, 1Co 1:10, 1Co 3:3
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
TSK: 1Co 11:19 - -- there : Mat 18:7; Luk 17:1; Act 20:30; 1Ti 4:1, 1Ti 4:2; 2Pe 2:1, 2Pe 2:2
heresies : or, sects, Act 5:17, Act 15:5, Act 24:5, Act 24:14, Act 26:5, Act...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
TSK: 1Co 11:22 - -- have : 1Co 11:34
or : 1Co 10:32, 1Co 15:9; Act 20:28; 1Ti 3:5, 1Ti 3:15
that have not : or, that are poor, Pro 17:5; Jam 2:5, Jam 2:6
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
TSK: 1Co 11:23 - -- I have : 1Co 15:3; Deu 4:5; Mat 28:20; Gal 1:1, Gal 1:11, Gal 1:12; 1Th 4:2
the same : Mat 26:2, Mat 26:17, Mat 26:34
took : Mat 26:26-28; Mar 14:22-2...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
TSK: 1Co 11:24 - -- eat : 1Co 5:7, 1Co 5:8; Psa 22:26, Psa 22:29; Pro 9:5; Son 5:1; Isa 25:6, Isa 55:1-3; Joh 6:53-58
this : 1Co 11:27, 1Co 11:28, 1Co 10:3, 1Co 10:4, 1Co...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
TSK: 1Co 11:25 - -- This : 1Co 11:27, 1Co 11:28
the new : Luk 22:20; 2Co 3:6, 2Co 3:14; Heb 9:15-20, Heb 13:20
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
TSK: 1Co 11:26 - -- ye do show : or, shew ye
till : 1Co 4:5, 1Co 15:23; Joh 14:3, Joh 21:22; Act 1:11; 1Th 4:16; 2Th 1:10, 2Th 2:2, 2Th 2:3; Heb 9:28; 2Pe 3:10; 1Jo 2:28;...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
TSK: 1Co 11:27 - -- whosoever : 1Co 10:21; Lev 10:1-3; Num 9:10,Num 9:13; 2Ch 30:18-20; Mat 22:11; Joh 6:51, Joh 6:63, Joh 6:64, Joh 13:18-27
shall be : 1Co 11:29
whosoever : 1Co 10:21; Lev 10:1-3; Num 9:10,Num 9:13; 2Ch 30:18-20; Mat 22:11; Joh 6:51, Joh 6:63, Joh 6:64, Joh 13:18-27
shall be : 1Co 11:29
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
TSK: 1Co 11:28 - -- let a : 1Co 11:31; Psa 26:2-7; Lam 3:40; Hag 1:5, Hag 1:7; Zec 7:5-7; 2Co 13:5; Gal 6:4; 1Jo 3:20,1Jo 3:21
and so : Num 9:10-13; Mat 5:23, Mat 5:24
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
TSK: 1Co 11:29 - -- damnation : or, judgment, Κριμα [Strong’ s G2917], judgment, or punishment, not damnation, for it was inflicted upon the disorderly and p...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
TSK: 1Co 11:30 - -- many : 1Co 11:32; Exo 15:26; Num 20:12, Num 20:24, Num 21:6-9; 2Sa 12:14-18; 1Ki 13:21-24; Psa 38:1-8, Psa 78:30,Psa 78:31, Psa 89:31-34; Amo 3:2; Heb...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
TSK: 1Co 11:31 - -- 1Co 11:28; Psa 32:3-5; Jer 31:18-20; Luk 15:18-20; 1Jo 1:9; Rev 2:5, Rev 3:2, Rev 3:3
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
TSK: 1Co 11:32 - -- we are : 1Co 11:30; Deu 8:5; Job 5:17, Job 5:18, Job 33:18-30, Job 34:31, Job 34:32; Psa 94:12, Psa 94:13, Psa 118:18; Pro 3:11, Pro 3:12; Isa 1:5; Je...
![](images/cmt_minus_head.gif)
collapse allCommentary -- Word/Phrase Notes (per Verse)
Barnes -> 1Co 11:5; 1Co 11:6; 1Co 11:7; 1Co 11:8; 1Co 11:9; 1Co 11:10; 1Co 11:11; 1Co 11:12; 1Co 11:13; 1Co 11:14; 1Co 11:15; 1Co 11:16; 1Co 11:17; 1Co 11:18; 1Co 11:19; 1Co 11:20; 1Co 11:21; 1Co 11:22; 1Co 11:23; 1Co 11:24; 1Co 11:25; 1Co 11:26; 1Co 11:27; 1Co 11:28; 1Co 11:29; 1Co 11:30; 1Co 11:31; 1Co 11:32; 1Co 11:33; 1Co 11:34
Barnes: 1Co 11:5 - -- But every woman that prayeth or prophesieth - In the Old Testament prophetesses are not unfrequently mentioned. Thus, Miriam is mentioned Exo 1...
But every woman that prayeth or prophesieth - In the Old Testament prophetesses are not unfrequently mentioned. Thus, Miriam is mentioned Exo 15:20; Deborah Jdg 4:4; Huldah 2Ki 22:14; Noadiah Neh 6:14. So also in the New Testament Anna is mentioned as a prophetess; Luk 2:36. That there were females in the early Christian church who corresponded to those known among the Jews in some measure as endowed with the inspiration of the Holy Spirit, cannot be doubted. What was their precise office, and what was the nature of the public services in which they were engaged, is not however known. That they prayed is clear; and that they publicly expounded the will of God is apparent also; see the note on Act 2:17. As the presumption is, however, that they were inspired, their example is no warrant now for females to take part in the public services of worship, unless they also give evidence that they are under the influence of inspiration, and the more especially as the apostle Paul has expressly forbidden their becoming public teachers; 1Ti 2:12.
If it is now pled, from this example, that women should speak and pray in public, yet it should be just so far only as this example goes, and it should be only when they have the qualifications that the early "prophetesses"had in the Christian church. If there are any such; if any are directly inspired by God, there then will be an evident propriety that they should publicly proclaim the will, and not till then. It may be further observed, however, that the fact that Paul here mentions the custom of women praying or speaking publicly in the church, does not prove that it was right or proper. His immediate object now was not to consider whether the practice was itself right, but to condemn the manner of its performance as a violation of all the proper rules of modesty and of subordination. On another occasion, in this very epistle, he fully condemns the practice in any form, and enjoins silence on the female members of the church in public; 1Co 14:34.
With her head uncovered - That is, with the veil removed which she usually wore. It would seem from this that the women removed their veils, and wore their hair disheveled, when they pretended to be under the influence of divine inspiration. This was the case with the pagan priestesses; and in so doing, the Christian women imitated them. On this account, if on no other, Paul declares the impropriety of this conduct. It was, besides, a custom among ancient females, and one that was strictly enjoined by the traditional laws of the Jews, that a woman should not appear in public unless she were veiled. See this proved by Lightfoot in loco.
Dishonoureth her head - Shows a lack of proper respect to man, to her husband, to her father, to the sex in general. The veil is a token of modesty and of subordinaion. It is regarded among Jews, and everywhere, as an emblem of her sense of inferiority of rank and station. It is the customary mark of her sex, and that by which she evinces her modesty and sense of subordination. To remove that, is to remove the appropriate mark of such subordination, and is a public act by which she thus shows dishonor to the man. And as it is proper that the grades and ranks of life should be recognized in a suitable manner, so it is improper that, even on pretence of religion, and of being engaged in the service of God, these marks should be laid aside.
For that is even all one as if she were shaven - As if her long hair, which nature teaches her she should wear for a veil (1Co 11:15, margin,) should be cut off. Long hair is, by the custom of the times, and of nearly all countries, a mark of the sex, an ornament of the female, and judged to be beautiful and comely. To remove that is to appear, in this respect, like the other sex, and to lay aside the badge of her own. This, says Paul, all would judge to be improper. You yourselves would not allow it. And yet to lay aside the veil - the appropriate badge of the sex, and of her sense of subordination - would be an act of the same kind. It would indicate the same feeling, the same forgetfulness of the proper sense of subordination; and if that is laid aside, all the usual indications of modesty and subordination might be removed also. Not even under religious pretences, therefore, are the usual marks of sex, and of propriety of place and rank, to be laid aside. Due respect is to be shown, in dress, and speech, and deportment, to those whom God has placed above us; and neither in language, in attire nor in habit are we to depart from what all judge to he proprieties of life, or from what God has judged and ordained to be the proper indications of the regular gradations in society.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Barnes: 1Co 11:6 - -- For if the woman be not covered - If her head be not covered with a veil. Let her also be shorn - Let her long hair be cut off. Let her l...
For if the woman be not covered - If her head be not covered with a veil.
Let her also be shorn - Let her long hair be cut off. Let her lay aside all the usual and proper indications of her sex and rank in life. If it is done in one respect, it may with the same propriety be done in all.
But if it be a shame ... - If custom, nature, and habit; if the common and usual feelings and views among people would pronounce this to be a shame, the other would be pronounced to be a shame also by the same custom and common sense of people.
Let her be covered - With a veil. Let her wear the customary attire indicative of modesty and a sense of subordination. Let her not lay this aside even on any pretence of religion.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Barnes: 1Co 11:7 - -- For a man indeed ought not to cover his head - That is, with a veil; or in public worship; when he approaches God, or when in His name he addre...
For a man indeed ought not to cover his head - That is, with a veil; or in public worship; when he approaches God, or when in His name he addresses his fellow man. It is not fit and proper that he should be covered. The reason why it is not proper, the apostle immediately states.
Forasmuch as he is the image and glory of God - The phrase "the image of God"refers to the fact that man was made in the likeness of his Maker Gen 1:27; and proves that, though fallen, there is a sense in which he is still the image of God. It is not because man is truly or pure, and thus resembles his Creator; but it evidently is because he was invested by his Maker with authority and dominion; he was superior to all other creatures; Gen 1:28. This is still retained; and this the apostle evidently refers to in the passage before us, and this he says should be recognized and regarded. If he wore a veil or turban, it would be a mark of servitude or inferiority. It was therefore improper that he should appear in this manner; but he should he so clad as not to obscure or hide the great truth that he was the direct representative of God on the earth, and had a superiority to all other creatures.
And glory of God - The word "glory"in the classic writers means:
(1) Opinion, sentiment, etc.;
(2)\caps1 f\caps0 ame, reputation.
Here it means, as it often does, splendor, brightness, or that which stands forth to "represent"God, or by which the glory of God is known. Man was created first; he had dominion given him; by him, therefore, the divine authority and wisdom first shone forth; and this fact should be recognized in the due subordination of rank, and even in the apparel and attire which shall be worn. The impression of his rank and superiority should be everywhere retained.
But the woman is the glory of the man - The honor, the ornament, etc. She was made for him; she was made after he was; she was taken from him, and was "bone of his bone, and flesh of his flesh."All her comeliness, loveliness, and purity are therefore an expression of his honor and dignity, since all that comeliness and loveliness were made of him and for him. This, therefore, ought to be acknowledged by a suitable manner of attire; and in his presence this sense of her inferiority of rank and subordination should be acknowledged by the customary use of the veil. She should appear with the symbol of modesty and subjection, which are implied by the head being covered This sense is distinctly expressed in the following verse.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Barnes: 1Co 11:8 - -- For the man is not of the woman - The man was not formed from the woman. But the woman of the man - From his side; Gen 2:18, Gen 2:22-23.
For the man is not of the woman - The man was not formed from the woman.
But the woman of the man - From his side; Gen 2:18, Gen 2:22-23.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Barnes: 1Co 11:9 - -- Neither was the man created for the woman ... - This is a simple statement of what is expressed in Genesis. The woman was made for the comfort ...
Neither was the man created for the woman ... - This is a simple statement of what is expressed in Genesis. The woman was made for the comfort and happiness of the man. Not to be a slave, but a help-meet; not to be the minister of his pleasures, but to be his aid and comforter in life; not to be regarded as of inferior nature and rank, but to be his friend, to divide his sorrows, and to multiply and extend his joys; yet still to be in a station subordinate to him. He is to be the head: the ruler; the presider in the family circle; and she was created to aid him in his duties, to comfort him in his afflictions, to partake with him of his pleasures. Her rank is therefore honorable, though it is subordinate. It is, in some respects, the more honorable because it is subordinate and as her happiness is dependent on him, she has the higher claim to his protection and his tender care. The whole of Paul’ s idea here is, that her situation and rank as subordinate should be recognized by her at all times, and that in his presence it was proper that she should wear the usual symbol of modesty and subordination, the veil.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Barnes: 1Co 11:10 - -- For this cause ... - There is scarcely any passage in the Scriptures which has more exercised the ingenuity of commentators than this verse. Th...
For this cause ... - There is scarcely any passage in the Scriptures which has more exercised the ingenuity of commentators than this verse. The various attempts which have been made to explain it may be seen in Pool, Rosenmuller, Bloomfield, etc. After all the explanations which have been given of it, I confess, I do not understand it. It is not difficult to see what the connection requires us to suppose in the explanation. The obvious interpretation would be, that a woman should have a veil on her head because of the angels who were supposed to be present, observing them in their public worship; and it is generally agreed that the word "power"(
Because of the angels - Some have explained this of good angels, who were supposed to be present in their assemblies (see Doddridge); others refer it to evil angels; and others to messengers or spies who, it has been supposed, were present in their public assemblies, and who would report greatly to the disadvantage of the Christian assemblies if the women were seen to be unveiled. I do not know what it means; and I regard it as one of the very few pass ages in the Bible whose meaning as yet is wholly inexplicable. The most natural interpretation seems to me to be this: "A woman in the public assemblies, and in speaking in the presence of people, should wear a veil - the usual symbol of modesty and subordination - because the angels of God are witnesses of your public worship Heb 1:13, and because they know and appreciate the propriety of subordination and order in public assemblies."
According to this, it would mean that the simple reason would be that the angels were witnesses of their worship; and that they were the friends of propriety, due subordination, and order; and that they ought to observe these in all assemblies convened for the worship of God - I do not know that this sense has been proposed by any commentator; but it is one which strikes me as the most obvious and natural, and consistent with the context. The following remarks respecting the ladies of Persia may throw some light on this subject - "The head-dress of the women is simple; their hair is drawn behind the head, and divided into several tresses; the beauty of this head-dress consists in the thickness and length of these tresses, which should fall even down to the heels, in default of which, they lengthen them with tresses of silk. The ends of these tresses they decorate with pearls and jewels, or ornaments of gold or silver. The head is covered, "under"the veil or kerchief "(course chef),"only by the end of a small "bandeau,"shaped into a triangle; this "bandeau,"which is of various colors, is thin and light.
The "bandalette"is embroidered by the needle, or covered with jewelry, according to the quality of the wearer. This is, in, my opinion, the ancient "tiara,"or "diadem,"of the queens of Persia. Only married women wear it; and it is the mark by which it is known that they are under subjection "(
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Barnes: 1Co 11:11 - -- Nevertheless - Lest the man should assume to himself too much superiority, and lest he should regard the woman as made solely for his pleasure,...
Nevertheless - Lest the man should assume to himself too much superiority, and lest he should regard the woman as made solely for his pleasure, and should treat her as in all respects inferior, and withhold the respect that is due to her. The design of this verse and the following is to show, that the man and woman are united in the most tender interests; that the one cannot live comfortably without the other; that one is necessary to the happiness of the other; and that though the woman was formed from the man, yet it is also to be remembered that the man is descended from the woman. She should therefore be treated with proper respect, tenderness, and regard.
Neither is the man without the woman ... - The man and the woman were formed for union and society. They are not in any respect independent of each other. One is necessary to the comfort of the other; and this fact should be recognized in all their contact.
In the Lord - By the arrangements or direction of the Lord. It is the appointment and command of the Lord that they should be mutual helps, and should each regard and promote the welfare of the other.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Barnes: 1Co 11:12 - -- As the woman is of the man - In the original creation, she was formed from the man. So is the man also by the woman - Is born of the woma...
As the woman is of the man - In the original creation, she was formed from the man.
So is the man also by the woman - Is born of the woman, or descended from her. The sexes are dependent on each other, and should therefore cultivate an indissoluble union.
But all things of God - All things were created and arranged by him. This expression seems designed to suppress any spirit of complaint or dissatisfaction with this arrangement; to make the woman contented in her subordinate station, and to make the man humble by the consideration that it is all owing to the appointment of God. The woman should therefore be contented, and the man should not assume any improper superiority, since the whole arrangement and appointment is of God.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Barnes: 1Co 11:13 - -- Judge in yourselves - Or, "Judge among yourselves."I appeal to you. I appeal to your natural sense of what is proper and right. Paul had used v...
Judge in yourselves - Or, "Judge among yourselves."I appeal to you. I appeal to your natural sense of what is proper and right. Paul had used various arguments to show them the impropriety of their females speaking unveiled in public. He now appeals to their natural sense of what was decent and right, according to established and acknowledged customs and habits.
Is it comely ... - Is it decent, or becoming? The Grecian women, except their priestesses, were accustomed to appear in public with a veil - Doddridge. Paul alludes to that established and proper habit, and asks whether it does not accord with their own views of propriety that women in Christian assemblies should also wear the same symbol of modesty.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Barnes: 1Co 11:14 - -- Doth not even nature itself - The word nature ( φύσις phusis ) denotes evidently that sense of propriety which all men have, and whi...
Doth not even nature itself - The word nature (
No reason can be given, in the nature of things, why the woman should wear long hair and the man not; but the custom prevails extensively everywhere, and nature, in all nations, has prompted to the same course. "Use is second nature;"but the usage in this case is not arbitrary, but is founded in an anterior universal sense of what is proper and right. A few, and only a few, have regarded it as comely for a man to wear his hair long. Aristotle tells us, indeed (Rhet. 1: - see Rosenmuller), that among the Lacedemonians, freemen wore their hair long. In the time of Homer, also, the Greeks were called by him
It is a shame unto him? - It is improper and disgraceful. It is doing that which almost universal custom has said appropriately belongs to the female sex.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Barnes: 1Co 11:15 - -- It is a glory unto her - It is an ornament, and adorning. The same instinctive promptings of nature which make it proper for a man to wear shor...
It is a glory unto her - It is an ornament, and adorning. The same instinctive promptings of nature which make it proper for a man to wear short hair, make it proper that the woman should suffer hers to grow long.
For a covering - Margin, "veil."It is given to her as a sort of natural veil, and to indicate the propriety of her wearing a veil. It answered the purposes of a veil when it was allowed to grow long, and to spread over the shoulders and ever parts of the face, before the arts of dress were invented or needed. There may also be an allusion here to the fact that the hair of women naturally grows longer than that of men. See Rosenmuller. The value which eastern females put on their long hair may be learned from the fact that when Ptolemy Euergetes, king of Egypt, was about to march against Seleucus Callinicus, his queen Berenice vowed, as the most precious sacrifice which she could make, to cut off and consecrate her hair if he returned in safety. "The eastern ladies,"says Harmer, "are remarkable for the length and the great number of the tresses of their hair. The men there, on the contrary, wear very little hair on their heads."Lady M. W. Montague thus speaks concerning the hair of the women:"Their hair hangs at full length behind, divided into tresses, braided with pearl or riband, which is always in great quantity. I never saw in my life so many fine heads of hair. In one lady’ s I have counted one hundred and ten of these tresses, all natural; but it must be owned that every kind of beauty is more common here than with us."The men there, on the contrary, shave all the hair off their heads, excepting one lock; and those that wear hair are thought effeminate. Both these particulars are mentioned by Chardin, who says they are agreeable to the custom of the East: "the men are shaved; the women nourish their hair with great fondness, which they lengthen, by tresses and tufts of silk, down to the heels. The young men who wear their hair in the East are looked upon as effeminate and infamous."
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Barnes: 1Co 11:16 - -- But if any man seem to be contentious - The sense of this passage is probably this: "If any man, any teacher, or others, "is disposed"to be str...
But if any man seem to be contentious - The sense of this passage is probably this: "If any man, any teacher, or others, "is disposed"to be strenuous about this, or to make it a matter of difficulty; if he is disposed to call in question my reasoning, and to dispute my premises and the considerations which I have advanced, and to maintain still that it is proper for women to appear unveiled in public, I would add that in Judea we have no such custom, neither does it prevail among any of the churches. This, therefore, would be a sufficient reason why it should not be done in Corinth, even if the abstract reasoning should not convince them of the impropriety. It would be singular; would be contrary to the usual custom; would offend the prejudices of many and should, therefore, be avoided."
We have no such custom - We the apostles in the churches which we have elsewhere founded; or we have no such custom in Judea. The sense is, that it is contrary to custom there for women to appear in public unveiled. This custom, the apostle argues, ought to be allowed to have some influence on the church of Corinth, even though they should not be convinced by his reasoning.
Neither the churches of God - The churches elsewhere. It is customary there for the woman to appear veiled. If at Corinth this custom is not observed, it will be a departure from what has elsewhere been regarded as proper; and will offend these churches. Even, therefore, if the reasoning is not sufficient to silence all cavils and doubts, yet the propriety of uniformity in the habits of the churches, the fear of giving offence should lead you to discountenance and disapprove the custom of your females appearing in public without their veil.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Barnes: 1Co 11:17 - -- Now in this that I declare - In this that I am about to state to you; to wit, your conduct in regard to the Lord’ s Supper. Why this subje...
Now in this that I declare - In this that I am about to state to you; to wit, your conduct in regard to the Lord’ s Supper. Why this subject is introduced here is not very apparent. The connection may be this. In the subjects immediately preceding he had seen much to commend, and he was desirous of commending them as far as it could be done. In 1Co 11:2 of this chapter he commends them in general for their regard to the ordinances which he had appointed when he was with them. But while he thus commended them, he takes occasion to observe that there was one subject on which he could not employ the language of approval or praise. Of their irregularities in regard to the Lord’ s supper he had probably heard by rumor, and as the subject was of great importance, and their irregularities gross and deplorable, he takes occasion to state to them again more fully the nature of that ordinance, and to reprove them for the manner in which they had celebrated it.
That ye come together - You assemble for public worship.
Not for the better, but for the worse - Your meetings, and your observance of the ordinances of the gospel, do not promote your edification, your piety, spirituality, and harmony; but tend to division, alienation, and disorder. You should assemble to worship God, and promote harmony, love, and piety; the actual effect of your assembling is just the reverse. In what way this was done he states in the following verses. These evil consequences were chiefly two, first, divisions and contentions; and, secondly, the abuse and profanation of the Lord’ s Supper.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Barnes: 1Co 11:18 - -- For first of all - That is, I mention as the first thing to be reproved. When ye come together in the church - When you come together in ...
For first of all - That is, I mention as the first thing to be reproved.
When ye come together in the church - When you come together in a religious assembly; when you convene for public worship. The word "church"here does not mean, as it frequently does with us, a "building."No instance of such a use of the word occurs in the New Testament; but it means when they came together as a Christian assembly; when they convened for the worship of God. These divisions took place then; and from some cause which it seems then operated to produce alienations and strifes.
I hear - I have learned through some members of the family of Chloe; 1Co 1:11.
That there be divisions among you - Greek, as in the margin, Schisms. The word properly means a rent, such as is made in cloth Mat 9:16; Mar 2:21, and then a division, a split, a faction among people; Joh 7:43; Joh 9:10; Joh 10:19. It does not mean here that they had proceeded so far as to form separate churches, but that there was discord and division in the church itself; see the notes on 1Co 1:10-11.
And I partly believe it - I credit a part of the reports; I have reason to think, that, though the evil may have been exaggerated, yet that it is true at least in part. I believe that there are dissensions in the church that should be reproved.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Barnes: 1Co 11:19 - -- For there must be - It is necessary ( δεῖ dei ); it is to he expected; there are reasons why there should be. What these reasons are h...
For there must be - It is necessary (
Heresies - Margin, "Sects."Greek
(1) It is the proper philological meaning of the word, and its established and common signification in the Bible.
\caps1 (2) i\caps0 t is the sense which the connection here demands. The apostle had made no reference to error of doctrine, but is discoursing solely of "irregularity"in "conduct;"and the first thing which he mentions, is, that there were schisms, divisions, strifes. The idea that the word here refers to "doctrines"would by no means suit the connection, and would indeed make nonsense. It would then read, "I hear that there are divisions or parties among you, and this I cannot commend you for. For it must he expected that there would be "fundamental errors of doctrine"in the church."But Paul did not reason in this manner. The sense is, "There are divisions among you. It is to be expected: there are causes for it; and it cannot he avoided that there should be, in the present state of human nature, divisions and sects formed in the church; and this is to be expected in order that those who are true Christians should be separated from those who are not."The foundation of this necessity is not in the Christian religion itself, for that is pure, and contemplates and requires union; but the existence of sects, and denominations, and contentious may be traced to the following causes:
(1) The love of power and popularity. Religion may be made the means of power; and they who have the control of the consciences of people, and of their religious feelings and opinions, can control them altogether.
\caps1 (2) s\caps0 howing more respect to a religious teacher than to Christ; see Notes on 1Co 1:12.
\caps1 (3) t\caps0 he multiplication of tests, and the enlargement of creeds and confessions of faith. The consequence is, that every new doctrine that is incorporated into a creed gives occasion for those to separate who cannot accord with it.
\caps1 (4) t\caps0 he passions of people - their pride, and ambition, and bigotry, and unenlightened zeal. Christ evidently meant that his church should be one; and that all who were his true followers should be admitted to her communion, and acknowledged everywhere as his own friends. And the time may yet come when this union shall be restored to his long distracted church, and that while there may be an honest difference of opinion maintained and allowed, still the bonds of Christian love shall secure union of "heart"in all who love the Lord Jesus, and union of "effort"in the grand enterprise in which all can unite - that of making war upon sin, and securing the conversion of the whole world to God.
That they which are approved - That they who are approved of God, or who are his true friends, and who are disposed to abide by his laws.
May be made manifest - May be known; recognized; seen. The effect of divisions and separations would be to show who were the friends of order, and peace, and truth. It seems to have been assumed by Paul, that they who made divisions could not be regarded as the friends of order and truth; or that their course could not be approved by God. The effect of these divisions would be to show who they were. So in all divisions, and all splitting into factions, where the great truths of Christianity are held, and where the corruption of the mass does not require separation, such divisions show who are the restless, ambitious, and dissatisfied spirits; who they are that are indisposed to follow the things that make for peace, and the laws of Christ enjoining union; and who they are who are gentle and peaceful, and disposed to pursue the way of truth, and love, and order, without contentions and strifes. This is the effect of schisms in the church; and the whole strain of the argument of Paul is to reprove and condemn such schisms, and to hold up the authors of them to reproof and condemnation; see Rom 16:17, "Mark them which cause divisions, and avoid them."
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Barnes: 1Co 11:20 - -- When ye come together therefore ... - When you are assembled as a church, compare Heb 10:25, and see the note on Act 2:1. Christians were const...
When ye come together therefore ... - When you are assembled as a church, compare Heb 10:25, and see the note on Act 2:1. Christians were constantly in the habit of assembling for public worship. It is probable that at this early period all the Christians in Corinth were accustomed to meet in the same place. The apostle here particularly refers to their "assembling"to observe the ordinance of the Lord’ s Supper. At that early period it is probable that this was done on every Lord’ s Day.
This is not ... - Margin, "Ye cannot eat."The meaning of this expression seems to be this. "Though you come together professedly to worship God, and to partake of the Lord’ s Supper, yet this cannot be the real design which you have in view. It cannot be that such practices as are allowed among you can be a part of the celebration of that supper, or consistent with it. Your greediness 1Co 11:21; your intemperance 1Co 11:21; your partaking of the food separately and not in common, cannot be a celebration of the Lord’ s Supper. Whatever, therefore, you may profess to be engaged in, yet really and truly you are not celebrating the Lord’ s Supper."
The Lord’ s supper - That which the Lord Jesus instituted to commemorate his death. It is called "the Lord’ s,"because it is his appointment, and is in honor of him; it is called "supper"(
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Barnes: 1Co 11:21 - -- For in eating - When you eat, having professedly come together to observe this ordinance. In order to understand this, it seems necessary to su...
For in eating - When you eat, having professedly come together to observe this ordinance. In order to understand this, it seems necessary to suppose that they had in some way made the Lord’ s supper either connected with a common feast, or that they regarded it as a mere common festival to be observed in a way similar to the festivals among the Greeks. Many have supposed that this was done by making the observance of the supper follow a festival, or what were afterward called "love feasts"
It had no resemblance to the so called love feasts. It was itself a religious ordinance; a direct appointment of God; and was never regarded as designed to be preliminary to the observance of the Lord’ s Supper, but was always understood as designed to be superseded by that. Besides, I know not that there is the slightest evidence, as has been often supposed, that the observance of the Lord’ s Supper was preceded, in the times of the apostles, by such a festival as a love feast. There is no evidence in the passage before us; nor is any adduced from any other part of the New Testament. To my mind it seems altogether improbable that the disorders in Corinth would assume this form - that they would first observe a common feast, and then the Lord’ s Supper in the regular manner. The statement before us leads to the belief that all was irregular and improper; that they had entirely mistaken the nature of the ordinance, and had converted it into an occasion of ordinary festivity, and even intemperance; that they had come to regard it as a feast in honor of the Saviour on some such principles as they observed feasts in honor of idols, and that they observed it in some such manner; and that all that was supposed to make it unlike those festivals was, that it was in honor of Jesus rather than an idol, and was to be observed with some reference to his authority and name.
Everyone taketh before other his own supper - That is, each one is regardless of the needs of the others; instead of making even a meal in common, and when all could partake together, each one ate by himself, and ate that which he had himself brought. They had not only erred, therefore, by misunderstanding altogether the nature of the Lord’ s supper, and by supposing that it was a common festival like those which they had been accustomed to celebrate; but they had also entirely departed from the idea that it was a festival to be partaken of in common, and at a common table. It had become a scene where every man ate by himself; and where the very idea that there was anything like a "common"celebration, or a celebration "together,"was abandoned. There is allusion here, doubtless, to what was a custom among the Greeks, that when a festival was celebrated, or a feast made, it was common for each person to provide, and carry a part of the things necessary for the entertainment. These were usually placed in common, and were partaken of alike by all the company. Thus, Xenophon (Mem. lib. 3:cap. xiv.) says of Socrates, that he was much offended with the Athenians for their conduct at their common suppers, where some prepared for themselves in a delicate and sumptuous manner, while others were poorly provided for. Socrates endeavored, he adds, to shame them out of this indecent custom by offering his provisions to all the company.
And one is hungry - Is deprived of food. It is all monopolized by others.
And another is drunken - The word used here (
(1) These persons had recently been pagans, and were grossly ignorant of the nature of true religion when the gospel was first preached among them.
\caps1 (2) t\caps0 hey had been accustomed to such revels in honor of idols under their former modes of worship, and it is the less surprising that they transferred their views to Christianity.
\caps1 (3) w\caps0 hen they had once so far misunderstood the nature of Christianity as to suppose the Lord’ s Supper to be like the feasts which they had formerly celebrated, all the rest followed as a matter of course. The festival would be observed in the same manner as the festivals in honor of idolaters; and similar scenes of gluttony and intemperance would naturally follow.
\caps1 (4) w\caps0 e are to bear in mind, also, that they do not seem to have been favored with pious, wise, and prudent teachers.
There were false teachers; and there were those who prided themselves on their wisdom, and who were self-confident, and who doubtless endeavored to model the Christian institutions according to their own views; and they thus brought them, as far as they could, to a conformity with pagan customs and idolatrous rites, We may remark here:
(1) We are not to expect perfection at once among a people recently converted from paganism.
\caps1 (2) w\caps0 e see how prone people are to abuse even the most holy rites of religion, and hence, how corrupt is human nature.
\caps1 (3) w\caps0 e see that even Christians, recently converted, need constant guidance and superintendence; and that if left to themselves they soon, like others, fall into gross and scandalous offences.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Barnes: 1Co 11:22 - -- What! - This whole verse is designed to convey the language of severe rebuke for their having so grossly perverted the design of the Lord’...
What! - This whole verse is designed to convey the language of severe rebuke for their having so grossly perverted the design of the Lord’ s Supper.
Have ye not houses ... - Do you not know that the church of God is not designed to be a place of feasting and revelry; nor even a place where to partake of your ordinary meals? Can it be, that you will come to the places of public worship, and make them the scenes of feasting and riot? Even on the supposition that there had been no disorder; no revelry; no intemperance; yet on every account it was grossly irregular and disorderly to make the place of public worship a place for a festival entertainment.
Or despise ye the church of God - The phrase "church of God"Grotius understands of the place. But the word church (
And shame them that have not - Margin, "Are poor."Something must here be understood in order to make out the sense. Probably it meant something like "possessions, property, conveniences, accomodations."The connection would make it most natural to understand "houses to eat and drink in;"and the sense then would be, "Do you thus expose to public shame those who have no accommodations at home; who are destitute and poor? You thus reflect publicly upon their poverty and want, while you bring your own provisions and fare sumptuously, and while those who are thus unable to provide for themselves are thus seen to be poor and needy."It is hard enough, the idea is, to be poor, and to be destitute of a home. But it greatly aggravates the matter to be "publicly treated"in that manner; to be exposed publicly to the contempt which such a situation implies. Their treatment of the poor in this manner would be a public exposing them to shame; and the apostle regarded this as particularly dishonorable, and especially in a Christian church, where all were professedly on an equality.
What shall I say to you? ... - How shall I sufficiently express my surprise at this, and my disapprobation at this course? It cannot be possible that this is right. It is not possible to conceal surprise and amazement that this custom exists, and is tolerated in a Christian church.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Barnes: 1Co 11:23 - -- For ... - In order most effectually to check the evils which existed, and to bring them to a proper mode of observing the Lord’ s Supper, ...
For ... - In order most effectually to check the evils which existed, and to bring them to a proper mode of observing the Lord’ s Supper, the apostle proceeds to state distinctly and particularly its design. They had mistaken its nature. They supposed it might be a common festival. They had made it the occasion of great disorder. He therefore adverts to the solemn circumstances in which it was instituted; the particular object which it had in view - the commemoration of the death of the Redeemer, and the purpose which it was designed to subserve, which was not that of a festival, but to keep before the church and the world a constant remembrance of the Lord Jesus until he should again return, 1Co 11:26. By this means the apostle evidently hoped to recall them from their irregularities, and to bring them to a just mode of celebrating this holy ordinance. He did not, therefore, denounce them even for their irregularity and gross disorder; he did not use harsh, violent, vituperative language, but he expected to reform the evil by a mild and tender statement of the truth, and by an appeal to their consciences as the followers of the Lord Jesus.
I have received of the Lord - This cannot refer to tradition, or mean that it had been communicated to him through the medium of the other apostles; but the whole spirit and scope of the passage seems to mean that he had derived the knowledge of the institution of the Lord’ s supper "directly"from the Lord himself. This might have been when on the road to Damascus, though that does not seem probable, or it may have been among the numerous revelations which at various times had been made to him; compare 2Co 12:7. The reason why he here says that he had received it directly from the Lord is, doubtless, that he might show them that it was of divine authority. "The institution to which I refer is what I myself received an account of "from personal and direct communication with the Lord Jesus himself, who appointed it."It is not, therefore, of human authority. It is not of my devising, but is of divine warrant, and is holy in its nature, and is to be observed in the exact manner prescribed by the Lord himself."
That which also I delivered ... - Paul founded the church at Corinth; and of course he first instituted the observance of the Lord’ s Supper there.
The same night in which he was betrayed - By Judas; see Mat 26:23-25, Mat 26:48-50. Paul seems to have mentioned the fact that it was on the very night on which he was betrayed, in order to throw around it the idea of greater solemnity. He wished evidently to bring before their minds the deeply affecting circumstances of his death; and thus to show them the utter impropriety of their celebrating the ordinance with riot and disorder, The idea is, that in order to celebrate it in a proper manner, it was needful "to throw themselves as much as possible into the very circumstances in which it was instituted;"and one of these circumstances most suited to affect the mind deeply was the fact that he was betrayed by a professed friend and follower. It is also a circumstance the memory of which is eminently suited to prepare the mind for a proper celebration of the ordinance now.
Took bread - Evidently the bread which was used at the celebration of the paschal supper. He took the bread which happened to be before him - such as was commonly used. It was not a "wafer"such as the papists now use; but was the ordinary bread which was eaten on such occasions; see the note on Mat 26:26.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Barnes: 1Co 11:24 - -- And when he had given thanks - See the note on Mat 26:26. Matthew reads it, "and blessed it."The words used here are, however, substantially th...
And when he had given thanks - See the note on Mat 26:26. Matthew reads it, "and blessed it."The words used here are, however, substantially the same as there; and this fact shows that since this was communicated to Paul "directly"by the Saviour, and in a manner distinct from that by which Matthew learned the mode of the institution, the Saviour designed that the exact form of the words should be used in its observance, and should thus be constantly borne in mind by his people.
Take eat ... - See the note on Mat 26:26.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Barnes: 1Co 11:25 - -- After the same manner - In like manner; likewise. With the same circumstances, and ceremonies, and designs. The purpose was the same. When...
After the same manner - In like manner; likewise. With the same circumstances, and ceremonies, and designs. The purpose was the same.
When he had supped - That is, all this occurred after the observance of the usual paschal supper. It could not, therefore, be a part of it, nor could it have been designed to be a festival or feast merely. The apostle introduces this evidently in order to show them that it could not be, as they seemed to have supposed, an occasion of feasting. It was after the supper, and was therefore to be observed in a distinct manner.
Saying, This cup ... - See the note at Mat 26:27-28.
Is the New Testament - The new covenant which God is about to establish with people. The word "testament"with us properly denotes a "will"- an instrument by which a man disposes of his property after his death. This is also the proper classic meaning of the Greek word used here,
That translation uniformly employs for this purpose the word
In my blood - Through my blood; that is, this new compact is to be sealed with my blood, in illusion to the ancient custom of sealing an agreement by a sacrifice; see the note at Mat 26:28.
This do ye - Partake of this bread and wine; that is, celebrate this ordinance.
As oft as ye drink it - Not prescribing any time; and not even specifying the frequency with which it was to be done; but leaving it to themselves to determine how often they would partake of it. The time of the Passover had been fixed by positive statute; the more mild and gentle system of Christianity left it to the followers of the Redeemer themselves to determine how often they would celebrate his death. It was commanded them to do it; it was presumed that their love to him would be so strong as to secure a frequent observance; it was permitted to them, as in prayer, to celebrate it on any occasion of affliction, trial, or deep interest when they would feel their need of it, and when they would suppose that its observance would be for the edification of the Church.
In remembrance of me - This expresses the whole design of the ordinance. It is a simple memorial, or remembrancer; designed to recall in a striking and impressive manner the memory of the Redeemer. It does this by a tender appeal to the senses - by the exhibition of the broken bread, and by the wine. The Saviour knew how prone people would be to forget him, and he, therefore, appointed this ordinance as a means by which his memory should be kept up in the world. The ordinance is rightly observed when it recalls the memory of the Saviour; and when its observance is the means of producing a deep, and lively, and vivid impression on the mind, of his death for sin. This expression, at the institution of the supper, is used by Luke Luk 22:19; though it does not occur in Matthew, Mark, or John.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Barnes: 1Co 11:26 - -- For as often - Whenever you do this. Ye eat this bread - This is a direct and positive refutation of the doctrine of the papists that the...
For as often - Whenever you do this.
Ye eat this bread - This is a direct and positive refutation of the doctrine of the papists that the bread is changed into the real body of the Lord Jesus. Here it is expressly called "bread"- bread still - bread after the consecration. Before the Saviour instituted the ordinance he took "bread"- it was bread then: it was "bread"which he "blessed"and "broke;"and it was bread when it was given to them; and it was bread when Paul says here that they ate. How then can it be pretended that it is anything else but bread? And what an amazing and astonishing absurdity it is to believe that that bread is changed into the flesh and blood of Jesus Christ (transubstantiation or consubstantiation)!
Ye do show the Lord’ s death - You set forth, or exhibit in an impressive manner, the fact that he was put to death; you exhibit the emblems of his broken body and shed blood, and your belief of the fact that he died. This shows that the ordinance was to be so far public as to be a proper showing forth of their belief in the death of the Saviour. It should be public. It is one mode of professing attachment to the Redeemer; and its public observance often has a most impressive effect on those who witness its observance.
Till he come - Until he returns to judge the world. This demonstrates:
(1) That it was the steady belief of the primitive church that the Lord Jesus would return to judge the world; and,
(2) That it was designed that this ordinance should be perpetuated, and observed to the end of time. In every generation, therefore, and in every place where there are Christians, it is to be observed, until the Son of God shall return; and the necessity of its observance shall cease only when the whole body of the redeemed shall be permitted to see their Lord, and there shall be no need of those emblems to remind them of him, for all shall see him as he is.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Barnes: 1Co 11:27 - -- Wherefore - ( ὥστε hōste ). So that, or it follows from what has been said. If this be the origin and intention of the Lord’...
Wherefore - (
Shall eat this bread - See 1Co 11:26. Paul still calls it bread, and shows thus that he was a stranger to the doctrine that the bread was changed into the very body of the Lord Jesus. If the papal doctrine of transubstantiation had been true, Paul could not have called it bread. The Romanists do not believe that it is bread, nor would they call it such; and this shows how needful it is for them to keep the Scriptures from the people, and how impossible to express their dogmas in the language of the Bible. Let Christians adhere to the simple language of the Bible, and there is no danger of their falling into the errors of the papists.
Unworthily - Perhaps there is no expression in the Bible that has given more trouble to weak and feeble Christians than this. It is certain that there is no one that has operated to deter so many from the communion; or that is so often made use of as an excuse for not making a profession of religion. The excuse is, "I am unworthy to partake of this holy ordinance. I shall only expose myself to condemnation. I must therefore wait until I become more worthy, and better prepared to celebrate it."It is important, therefore, that there should he a correct understanding of this passage. Most persons interpret it as if it were "unworthy,"and not "unworthily,"and seem to suppose that it refers to their personal qualifications, to their "unfitness"to partake of it, rather than to the manner in which it is done. It is to he remembered, therefore. that the word used here is an "adverb,"and not an "adjective,"and has reference to the manner of observing the ordinance, and not to their personal qualifications or fitness. It is true that in ourselves we are all "unworthy"of an approach to the table of the Lord; "unworthy"to be regarded as his followers; "unworthy"of a title to everlasting life: but it does not follow that we may not partake of this ordinance in a worthy, that is, a proper manner, with a deep sense of our sinfulness, our need of a Saviour, and with some just views of the Lord Jesus as our Redeemer. Whatever may be our consciousness of personal unworthiness and unfitness - and that consciousness cannot be too deep - yet we may have such love to Christ, and such a desire to be saved by him, and such a sense of his worthiness, as to make it proper for us to approach and partake of this ordinance. The term "unworthily"(
(1) Such an irregular and indecent observance as existed in the church of Corinth, where even gluttony and intemperance prevailed under the professed design of celebrating the Lord’ s Supper.
\caps1 (2) a\caps0 n observance of the ordinance where there should be no distinction between it and common meals (Note on 1Co 11:29); where they did not regard it as designed to show forth the death of the Lord Jesus. It is evident that where such views prevailed, there could be no proper qualification for this observance; and it is equally clear that such ignorance can hardly be supposed to prevail now in those lands which are illuminated by Christian truth.
\caps1 (3) w\caps0 hen it is done for the sake of mockery, and when the purpose is to deride religion, and to show a marked contempt for the ordinances of the gospel. It is a remarkable fact that many infidels have been so full of malignity and bitterness against the Christian religion as to observe a mock celebration of the Lord’ s Supper. There is no profounder depth of depravity than this; there is nothing that can more conclusively or painfully show the hostility of man to the gospel of God. It is a remarkable fact, also, that not a few such persons have died a most miserable death. Under the horrors of an accusing conscience, and the anticipated destiny of final damnation, they have left the world as frightful monuments of the justice of God. It is also a fact that not a few infidels who have been engaged in such unholy celebrations have been converted to that very gospel which they were thus turning into ridicule and scorn. Their consciences have been alarmed; they have shuddered at the remembrance of the crime; they have been overwhelmed with the consciousness of guilt, and have found no peace until they have found it in that blood whose shedding they were thus profanely celebrating.
Shall be guilty - (
Bloomfield renders it, "He shall be guilty respecting the body, that is, guilty of profaning the symbols of the body and blood of Christ, and consequently shall be amenable to the punishment due to such an abuse of the highest means of grace."But it seems to me that this does not convey the fulness of the meaning of the passage. The obvious and literal sense is evidently that they should by such conduct be involved in the sin of putting the Lord Jesus to death. The phrase "the body and blood of the Lord,"in this connection, obviously, I think, refers to his death, to the fact that his body was broken, and his blood shed, of which the bread and wine were symbols; and to be guilty of that, means to be guilty of putting him to death; that is, to be involved in the crime, or to do a thing which should involve the same criminality as that. To see this, we are to remember:
(1) That the bread and wine were symbols or emblems of that event, and designed to set it forth.
\caps1 (2) t\caps0 o treat with irreverence and profaneness the bread which was an emblem of his broken body, was to treat with irreverence and profaneness the body itself; and in like manner the wine, the symbol of his blood.
\caps1 (3) t\caps0 hose, therefore who treated the symbols of his body and blood with profaneness and contempt were "united in spirit"with those who put him to death. They evinced the same feelings toward the Lord Jesus that his murderers did. They treated him with scorn, profaneness, and derision; and showed that with the same spirit they would have joined in the act of murdering the Son of God. They would evince their hostility to the Saviour himself as far as they could do, by showing contempt for the memorials of his body and blood. The apostle does by no means, however, as I understand him, mean to say that any of the Corinthians had been thus guilty of his body and blood. He does not charge on them this murderous intention. But he states what is the fair and obvious construction which is to be put on a wanton disrespect for the Lord’ s supper. And the design is to guard them, and all others, against this sin. There can be no doubt that those who celebrate his death in mockery and derision are held guilty of his body and blood. They show that they have the spirit of his murderers; they evince it in the most awful way possible; and they who would thus join in a profane celebration of the Lord’ s Supper would have joined in the cry, "Crucify him, crucify him,"For it is a most fearful and solemn act to trifle with sacred things; and especially to hold up to derision and scorn, the bitter sorrows by which the Son of God accomplished the redemption of the world.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Barnes: 1Co 11:28 - -- But let a man examine himself - Let him search and see if he have the proper qualifications - if he has knowledge to discern the Lord’ s b...
But let a man examine himself - Let him search and see if he have the proper qualifications - if he has knowledge to discern the Lord’ s body (note, 1Co 11:29); if he has true repentance for his sins; true faith in the Lord Jesus; and a sincere desire to live the life of a Christian, and to be like the Son of God, and be saved by the merits of his blood. Let him examine himself, and see whether he have the right feelings of a communicant, and can approach the table in a proper manner. In regard to this we may observe:
(1) That this examination should include the great question about his personal piety, and about his particular and special fitness for this observance. It should go back into the great inquiry whether he has ever been born again; and it should also have special reference to his immediate and direct preparation for the ordinance. He should not only be able to say in general that he is a Christian, but he should be able to say that he has then a particular preparation for it. He should be in a suitable frame of mind for it. He should have personal evidence that he is a penitent; that he has true faith in the Lord Jesus; that he is depending on him, and is desirous of being saved by him.
\caps1 (2) t\caps0 his examination should be minute and particular. It should extend to the words, the thoughts, the feelings, the conduct. We should inquire whether in our family and in our business; whether among Christians, and with the world, we have lived the life of a Christian. We should examine our private thoughts; our habits of secret prayer and of searching the Scriptures. Our examination should be directed to the inquiry whether we are gaining the victory over our easily besetting sins and becoming more and more conformed to the Saviour. It should, in short, extend to all our Christian character; and everything which goes to make up or to mar that character should be the subject of faithful and honest examination.
\caps1 (3) i\caps0 t should be done because:
\tx720 \tx1080 (a) It is well to pause occasionally in life, and take an account of our standing in the sight of God. People make advances in business and in property only when they often examnine their accounts, and know just how they stand,
(b) Because the observance of the Lord’ s Supper is a solemn act, and there will be fearful results if it is celebrated in an improper manner.
© Because self-examination supposes seriousness and calmness, and prevents precipitation and rashness - states of mind entirely unfavorable to a proper observance of the Lord’ s Supper.
(d) Because by self-examination one may search out and remove those things that are offensive to God, and the sins which so easily beset us may be known and abandoned.
(e) Because the approach to the table of the Lord is a solemn approach to the Lord himself; is a solemn profession of attachment to him; is an act of consecration to his service in the presence of angels and of people; and this should be done in a calm, deliberate and sincere manner; such a manner as may be the result of a prayerful and honest self-examination.
And so let him eat ... - And as the result of such examination, or after such an examination; that is, let the act of eating that bread always be preceded by a solemn self-examination. Bloomfield renders it, "and then, only then."The sense is plain, that the communion should always be preceded by an honest and prayerful self-examination.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Barnes: 1Co 11:29 - -- For he that eateth ... - In order to excite them to a deeper reverence for this ordinance, and to a more solemn mode of observing it, Paul in t...
For he that eateth ... - In order to excite them to a deeper reverence for this ordinance, and to a more solemn mode of observing it, Paul in this verse states another consequence of partaking of it in an improper and irreverent manner; compare 1Co 11:27.
Eateth and drinketh damnation - This is evidently a figurative expression, meaning that by eating and drinking improperly he incurs condemnation; which is here expressed by eating and drinking condemnation itself. The word "damnation"we now apply, in common language, exclusively to the future and final punishment of the wicked in hell. But the word used here does not of necessity refer to that; and according to our use of the word now, there is a harshness and severity in our translation which the Greek does not require, and which probably was not conveyed by the word "damnation"when the translation was made. In the margin it is correctly rendered "judgment."The word here used (
(1) Because the Corinthians did eat unworthily, and yet the judgments inflicted on them were only temporal, that is, weakness, sickness, and temporal death 1Co 11:30; and,
(2) Because the reason assigned for these judgments is, that they might not be condemned with the wicked; that is, as the wicked are in hell, 1Co 11:32. Whitby. Compare 1Pe 4:17.
Not discerning the Lord’ s body - Not discriminating"
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Barnes: 1Co 11:30 - -- For this cause - On account of the improper manner of celebrating the Lord’ s Supper; see 1Co 11:21. Many are weak - ( ἀσθεν...
For this cause - On account of the improper manner of celebrating the Lord’ s Supper; see 1Co 11:21.
Many are weak - (
And many sleep - Have died. The death of Christians in the Scriptures is commonly represented under the image of "sleep;"Dan, 1Co 12:2; Joh 11:11-12; 1Co 15:51; 1Th 4:14; 1Th 5:10. Perhaps it may be implied by the use of this mild term here, instead of the harsher word "death,"that these were true Christians. This sentiment is in accordance with all that Paul states in regard to the church at Corinth. Notwithstanding all their irregularities, he does not deny that they were sincere Christians, and all his appeals and reasonings proceed on that supposition, though there was among them much ignorance and irregularity. God often visits his own people with trial; and though they are his children, yet this does not exempt them from affliction and discipline on account of their imperfections, errors, and sins. The "practical lesson"taught by this is, that Christians should serve God with purity; that they should avoid sin in every form; and that the commission of sin will expose them, as well as others, to the divine displeasure. The reason why this judgment was inflicted on the Corinthians was, that there might be a suitable impression made of the holy nature of that ordinance, and that Christians might be led to observe it in a proper manner. If it be asked whether God ever visits his people now with his displeasure for their improper manner of observing this ordinance, we may reply:
(1) That we have no reason to suppose that he inflicts "bodily"diseases and corporeal punishments on account of it. But,
(2) There is no reason to doubt that the improper observance of the Lord’ s Supper, like the improper observance of any other religious duty, will be followed with the expression of God’ s displeasure, and with a spiritual blightling on the soul. This may be evinced in the following modes:
\tx720 \tx1080 (a) In hardening the heart by an improper familiarity with the most sacred and solemn ordinances of religion.
(b) Increased coldness and deadness in the service of God. If the ordinances of the gospel are not the means of making us better, they are the means of making us worse.
© The loss of the favor of God, or of those pure, and spiritual, and elevated joys which we might have obtained by a proper observance of the ordinance.
There is no reason to doubt that God may make it the occasion of manifesting his displeasure. It may be followed by a lack of spiritual comfort and peace; by a loss of communion with God; and by a withholding of those comforts from the soul which might have been enjoyed, and which are imparted to those who observe it in a proper manner. The general principle is, that an improper discharge of any duty will expose us to his displeasure, and to the certain loss of all those favors which might have resulted from a proper discharge of the duty, and to the tokens of the divine displeasure. And this is as true of prayer, or of any other religious duty, as of an improper observance of the Lord’ s Supper.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Barnes: 1Co 11:31 - -- For if we would judge ourselves - If we would examine ourselves, 1Co 11:28; if we would exercise a strict scrutiny over our hearts and feelings...
For if we would judge ourselves - If we would examine ourselves, 1Co 11:28; if we would exercise a strict scrutiny over our hearts and feelings, and conduct, and come to the Lord’ s Table with a proper spirit, we should escape the condemnation to which they are exposed who observe it in an improper manner. If we would exercise proper "severity"and "honesty"in determining our own character and fitness for the ordinance, we should not expose ourselves to the divine displeasure.
We should not be judged - We should not be exposed to the expression of God’ s disapprobation. He refers here to the punishment which had come upon the Corinthians for their improper manner of observing the ordinance; and he says that if they had properly examined themselves, and had understood the nature of the ordinance, that they would have escaped the judgments that had come upon them. This is as true now as it was then. If we wish to escape the divine displeasure; if we wish the communion to be followed with joy, and peace, and growth in grace, and not with blighting and spiritual barrenness, we should exercise a severe judgment on our character, and feelings, and motives; and should come to it with a sincere desire to honor Christ, and to advance in the divine life.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Barnes: 1Co 11:32 - -- But when we are judged - This is added, evidently, to console those who had been afflicted on account of their improper manner of observing the...
But when we are judged - This is added, evidently, to console those who had been afflicted on account of their improper manner of observing the Lord’ s Supper. The sense is, that though they were thus afflicted by God; though he had manifested his displeasure at the manner in which they had observed the ordinance, yet the divine judgment in the case was not inexorable. They were not regarded by God as wholly strangers to piety, and would not be lost forever. They should not be alarmed, therefore, as if there was no mercy for them; but they should rather regard their calamities as the chastening of the Lord on his own children, and as designed for their salvation.
We are chastened of the Lord - It is "his"act; and it is not vengeance and wrath; but it is to be regarded as the chastisement of a father’ s hand, in order that we should not be condemned with the wicked. "We are under the discipline"(
That we should not be condemned with the world - It is implied here:
(1) That the world - those who were not Christians, would be condemned;
(2) That Paul regarded the Corinthians, whom he addressed, and who had even been guilty of this improper manner of observing the Lord’ s Supper, and who had been punished for it as true Christians; and,
(3) That the purpose which God had in view in inflicting these judgments on them was, that they might be purified, and enlightened, and recovered from their errors, and saved. This is the design of God in the calamities and judgments which he brings on his own children - And so now, if he afflicts us, or leaves us to darkness, or follows the communion with the tokens of his displeasure, it is, that we may be recovered to a deeper sense of our need of him; to juster views of the ordinance; and to a more earnest wish to obtain his favor.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Barnes: 1Co 11:33 - -- When ye come together to eat - Professedly to eat the Lord’ s Supper. Tarry one for another - Do not be guilty of disorder, intemper...
When ye come together to eat - Professedly to eat the Lord’ s Supper.
Tarry one for another - Do not be guilty of disorder, intemperance, and gluttony; see the note at 1Co 11:21. Doddridge understands this of the feast that he supposes to have preceded the Lord’ s Supper. But the more obvious interpretation is, to refer it to the Lord’ s Supper itself; and to enjoin perfect order, respect, and sobriety. The idea is, that the table was common for the rich and the poor; and that the rich should claim no priority or precedence over the poor.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Barnes: 1Co 11:34 - -- And if any man hunger ... - The Lord’ s Supper is not a common feast; it is not designed as a place where a man may gratify his appetite. ...
And if any man hunger ... - The Lord’ s Supper is not a common feast; it is not designed as a place where a man may gratify his appetite. It is designed as a simple "commemoration,"and not as a "feast."This remark was designed to correct their views of the supper, and to show them that it was to be distinguished from the ordinary idea of a feast or festival.
That ye come not together unto condemnation - That the effect of your coming together for the observance of the Lord’ s Supper be not to produce condemnation; see the note at 1Co 11:29.
And the rest will I set in order ... - Probably he refers here to other matters on which he had been consulted; or other things which he knew required to be adjusted. The other matters pertaining to the order and discipline of the church I will defer until I can come among you, and personally arrange them. It is evident from this, that Paul at this time purposed soon to go to Corinth; see 2Co 1:15-16. It was doubtless true that there might be many things which it was desirable to adjust in the church there, which could not be so well done by letter. The main things, therefore, which it was needful to correct immediately, he had discussed in this letter; the other matters he reserved to be arranged by himself when he should go among them. Paul was disappointed in his expectations of returning among them as soon as he had intended (see 2Co 1:17), and under this disappointment he forwarded to them another epistle. If all Christians would follow implicitly his directions here in regard to the Lord’ s Supper, it would be an ordinance full of comfort. May all so understand its nature, and so partake of it, that they shall meet the approbation of their Lord, and so that it may be the means of saving grace to their souls.
Poole -> 1Co 11:5; 1Co 11:6; 1Co 11:7; 1Co 11:8; 1Co 11:9; 1Co 11:10; 1Co 11:11; 1Co 11:12; 1Co 11:13; 1Co 11:14; 1Co 11:15; 1Co 11:16; 1Co 11:17; 1Co 11:18; 1Co 11:19; 1Co 11:20; 1Co 11:21; 1Co 11:22; 1Co 11:23; 1Co 11:24-25; 1Co 11:26; 1Co 11:27; 1Co 11:28; 1Co 11:29; 1Co 11:30; 1Co 11:31; 1Co 11:32; 1Co 11:33; 1Co 11:34
Poole: 1Co 11:5 - -- But every woman that prayeth or prophesieth: though the woman be forbidden to teach, and commanded to be in silence, 1Ti 2:12 ; yet that text m...
But every woman that prayeth or prophesieth: though the woman be forbidden to teach, and commanded to be in silence, 1Ti 2:12 ; yet that text must be understood of ordinary women, and in ordinary cases, not concerning such as prophesied from an extraordinary impulse or motion of the Spirit. We read of women prophetesses both in the Old and New Testament; such was Huldah in Josiah’ s time, and Anna, of whom we read Luk 2:36 ; and we read that Philip
had four daughters that did prophesy Act 21:9 .
With her head uncovered: the uncovered head here (as before) must signify not covered with some artificial covering, such as our quoifs, hats, hoods, or veils, &c., or with her own hair, not hanging loose, but artificially used so as to be a covering.
Dishonoureth her head dishonoureth either her husband, who is her political or economical head, for by that habit she behaveth herself as if she were not one in subjection, and seemeth to usurp an undue authority over the man; or her natural head, it being in those places accounted an immodest thing for a woman to appear in public uncovered. It is observed of Rebekah, when she met Isaac, Gen 24:65 : She took a veil, and covered herself. For that is even all one as if she were shaven; for, saith the apostle, yourselves would judge it an uncomely thing for a woman to be shaven; now to pray or to prophesy with the head uncovered, is all one. This last clause will incline us to think, that by the uncovered head in this verse, is not only to be understood uncovered with some other covering besides her hair, but with her hair dishevelled, hanging loose at its length, for else it is not all one to have the head uncovered with a hat, or hood, or quoif, and to be shaven; for the apostle afterward saith, 1Co 11:15 , her hair is given to her for a covering or a veil: so that possibly that which the apostle here reflecteth upon, is women’ s coming into the public assemblies with their hair hanging loosely down, and not decently wound up so as to make a covering for the head; which, we are told, was the practice of those beastly she-priests of Bacchus, who, like frantic persons, performed those pretendedly religious rites with their hair so hanging loose, and were called manades, because they behaved themselves more like mad persons than such as were in the actual use of their reason: something like which, it is most probable, some women in the Christian church at Corinth affected, against which the apostle here argueth.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Poole: 1Co 11:6 - -- For if the woman be not covered, let her also be shorn: nature itself teacheth, that it is a shameful sight to see a woman revealing the mind and wil...
For if the woman be not covered, let her also be shorn: nature itself teacheth, that it is a shameful sight to see a woman revealing the mind and will of God, by an extraordinary pretended revelation, in so indecent a manner, as with her hair all hanging down; let her hair be either shaven off, or at least cut after the manner of men’ s hair, if she will neither tie it up artificially, so as to make it a covering for her head, nor put on a veil to cover her: for though a woman prophesying from an extraordinary impulse, be not under the common law of women not speaking in the public assembly, but keeping silence; yet she is under the law of nature to do no such grave and solemn actions in such a rude manner, that from the light of nature, or the common account of all that live in that place, she should be judged to be irreverent and brutish in her religious action. From this text a question hath been started: Whether Christian women may lawfully go without any other covering upon their heads than their hair? I must confess, I see not how such a question can have any bottom in this text, where the apostle is not speaking of women’ s ordinary habiting themselves, but only when they prayed and prophesied, and (if I mistake not) when they ministered in prayer and prophecy (as was said before). We now have no such prophetesses; so as I think that question about the lawfulness of women’ s going without any other covering upon their heads than their hair, must be determined from other texts, not this, and is best determined from circumstances; for God having given to the woman her hair for a covering and an ornament, I cannot see how it should be simply unlawful; accidentally it may, from the circumstances of pride in her heart that so dresseth herself, or lust and wantonness in others’ hearts; or other circumstances of ill designs and intentions in the woman so dressing herself.
But if it be a shame for a woman to be shorn or shaven, let her be covered if nature teacheth us that it is a shame for a woman to be shorn or shaven, it also teacheth us that it is a shame for her to be uncovered, either with her hair, or some artificial covering; which latter seemeth rather to be meant in this place, because divines think, that the face is that part of the head which the apostle here intendeth should be covered in their religious actions, which is not covered with the hair, but with a veil, &c.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Poole: 1Co 11:7 - -- For a man indeed ought not to cover his head covering the head being in those countries a token of subjection, a man ought to uphold the power, pre-e...
For a man indeed ought not to cover his head covering the head being in those countries a token of subjection, a man ought to uphold the power, pre-eminence, and authority with which God hath invested him, and not to cover his head, further than it is naturally covered with hair.
Forasmuch as he is the image and glory, of God because he hath a peculiar cause of glorying in God, as he to whom alone he is subject, and therefore ought by no habits or postures to show himself in subjection to others: or because God glorieth in him, as a most excellent piece of his workmanship: God is represented in man. Paul useth to call that one’ s glory wherein he glorieth, 2Co 1:12,14 1Th 2:20 . So David ealleth God his glory and Solomon tells us, Pro 17:6 , that the glory of children are their fathers. So as the apostle here useth a double argument for the man’ s not covering of his head:
1. Because the man is immediately subject to God, and therefore ought not by any habits, or civil rites, to show his natural subjection to men, that are not by nature his superiors (for we must not think, that the apostle by this argument forbiddeth subjection to natural, economical, or political superiors).
2. Because God glorieth in man.
But the woman is the glory of the man created for the honour of the man, and for his help and assistance, and originally made out of man, so as man may glory of her, as Adam did of Eve, Gen 2:23 ,
This is now bone of my bone, and flesh of my flesh The glory of God ought to be revealed and uncovered, manifested to all: the glory of the man ought to be hidden and concealed.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Poole: 1Co 11:8 - -- Here the apostle openeth or proveth what he had before said of the woman’ s being the glory of the man; the woman was made of the man; the m...
Here the apostle openeth or proveth what he had before said of the woman’ s being the glory of the man; the woman was made of the man; the man was not made of a rib taken out of the woman, but the woman was made of a rib taken out of the man; we have the history, Gen 2:21,22 ; and from hence the apostle argueth her subjection to the man.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Poole: 1Co 11:9 - -- We have this expounded, Gen 2:18 , where God said: It is not good that man should be alone; I will make him an help meet for him God did not first ...
We have this expounded, Gen 2:18 , where God said: It is not good that man should be alone; I will make him an help meet for him God did not first create the woman, and then make man a meet help for her; but he first made the man, and then the woman, that she might be a meet help for him. Now it is a rule in reason: That whosoever or whatsoever is made for another person or thing, is less excellent than that person or thing for which the other is made.
For the man signifies to serve and help the man.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Poole: 1Co 11:10 - -- By power on her head is here to be understood (as some think) a covering on her head, in sign that she is under the power of her husband: the thing...
By power on her head is here to be understood (as some think) a covering on her head, in sign that she is under the power of her husband: the thing signified is here put for the sign, as the sign is often put for the thing signified. Thus the ark, which is called, the ark of God’ s strength, Psa 132:8 , is itself called his strength, 1Ch 16:11 . But others here by head do not understand the woman’ s natural head, but her husband, or the man, who is the political head of the woman; and by having power on him, understand her exercising of her power in him, testifying it by covering her head; and think this text well expounded by 1Ti 2:12 , where the apostle forbiddeth the woman to usurp authority over the man. He addeth another reason,
because of the angels By angels here some understand God himself, who by the ministry of angels created man and woman in this order, and put this law upon the woman. Others understand those messengers which the man sent sometimes, by whom the woman was betrothed (but this was a custom only in use amongst the Jews). Others here by angels understand the ministers and officers of the church, who are sometimes in holy writ called angels. Others understand the evil angels, who watch to take advantage to tempt men from objects appearing beautiful to unchaste thoughts, &c. But the most and best interpreters understand here by angels, the good angels; for the apostle would hardly have spoken of devils under the notion of angels, especially speaking to deter persons from actions; and so it teaches us, that the good angels, who are ministering spirits for the good of God’ s elect, at all times have a special minstration, or at least are more particularly present, in the assemblies of people for religious worship, observing the persons, carriage, and demeanour; the sense of which ought to awe all persons attending those services, from any indecent and unworthy behaviour.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Poole: 1Co 11:11 - -- Lest the man, upon the apostle’ s discourse of his pre-eminence and dignity over the woman, should wax proud and insolent, and carry himself to...
Lest the man, upon the apostle’ s discourse of his pre-eminence and dignity over the woman, should wax proud and insolent, and carry himself too imperiously, the apostle addeth this, that they both stand in need of each other’ s help, so as neither of them could well be without the other, either as to matters that concern God, or that concern the world; the Lord so ordering and disposing it, that they should be mutual helps one to another. Or else the sense is, they are equal in the Lord as to a state of grace, in Christ there is neither male nor female: though there be a difference between a man and woman in other things, and the man hath the priority and superiority; yet when we come to consider them as to their spiritual state, and in their spiritual reference, there is no difference.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Poole: 1Co 11:12 - -- The man hath a priority to the woman, being first created, and a superiority over her upon that account, she being made for him, not he for her, thi...
The man hath a priority to the woman, being first created, and a superiority over her upon that account, she being made for him, not he for her, this is indeed the man’ s advantage; but on the other side, since the creation of the first man, all men are by the woman, who conceives them in her womb, suckles them at her breasts, is concerned in their education while children, and dandled upon her knees; the man therefore hath no reason to despise and too much to trample upon the woman: and all these things are of God by the wise ordering and disposing of God; so as neither hath the man, by reason of his prerogative, in being first created, and the end for which the woman was created, any cause to insult and triumph over the woman; neither hath the woman any cause, by reason of her prerogative, that the man is by her, any cause to triumph over the man; but both of them ought to look upon themselves as having their prerogatives from God, and in the use of them to behave themselves according to the will of God, behaving themselves in their respective stations as it is the will of God they should behave themselves, the woman being subject to the man, and testifying such subjection by all the signs of it, and the man carrying himself towards the woman as he who is the image and glory of God.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Poole: 1Co 11:13 - -- No man is truly and thoroughly convinced of an error, till he be convicted by his own conscience. It is therefore very usual in holy writ for God, b...
No man is truly and thoroughly convinced of an error, till he be convicted by his own conscience. It is therefore very usual in holy writ for God, by his sacred penmen, to make appeals unto men’ s own consciences, and put them to judge within themselves, to examine a thing by their own reason, and according to the dictates of that to give sentence for or against themselves. The thing as to which he would have them judge within themselves, and accordingly pronounce sentence, was, whether it were a decent thing for women to pray to God with their hair all hanging loose about their shoulders, or without any veil, or covering for their head and face.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Poole: 1Co 11:14 - -- He tells them, that they could not judge this as a thing comely, for nature itself taught them, that it is a shame for a man to wear long hair. By
...
He tells them, that they could not judge this as a thing comely, for nature itself taught them, that it is a shame for a man to wear long hair. By
nature here some understand the law of nature, according to which it would have an intrinsic evil in it, which it is plain it hath not; for then neither must the Nazarites have used it, (as they did), neither would it be lawful for the sake of men’ s health or life. Others understand by nature the law of nations; but neither is this true, for in many nations men wear hair at the utmost length. Others understand common sense, or the light and judgment of that natural reason which since the fall is left in man; but this must be the same in all men, and we know that all men do not judge this shameful. Others therefore by nature here understand a common custom, which (as they say) maketh as it were a second nature; so the term is taken, Rom 11:24 : but it cannot so signify here; for there neither is, nor ever was, such a universal custom in any place, that none in it wore long hair. Others by nature here understand natural inclination; but neither can this be the sense, for there is in some men, as well as in women, a natural propension and inclination to wear their hair at excessive lengths. Others here by nature understand the difference of the sex, as they take this word to be used, Rom 1:26 ; the distinction of the sexes teacheth us this: and this seemath to be the most probable sense of this text. The apostle arguing, that as the male and female sex are artificially distinguished by garments, and it was the will of God they should be so, so they should also be distinguished by the wearing of their hair; and it was no less shame for a man to wear his hair like a woman, than to wear garments like a woman.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Poole: 1Co 11:15 - -- But he saith, if a woman have long hair, it is a glory to her Long hair is comely for the woman, and accounted to her for a beauty or ornament, for ...
But he saith, if a woman have long hair, it is a glory to her Long hair is comely for the woman, and accounted to her for a beauty or ornament, for God hath
given her her hair for a covering There have been books written about the lawfulness or unlawfulness of men’ s wearing long hair, and the due or undue lengths of men’ s hair, the substance of which were too much to transcribe here. That which in these verses seemeth to be commended to us, as the will of God in this matter, is:
1. That men and women should so order their hair, as by it to preserve the distinction of sexes.
2. That men should not wear their hair after the manner of women, either dishevelled, or curled, and tricked up about their heads, which speaks too much of an unmanly and effeminate temper, much more was what became not Christians. And if this be forbidden men, as to the use of their own hair, they stand concerned to consider whether it be lawful for them thus to wear and adorn themselves with the hair of other men and women.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Poole: 1Co 11:16 - -- If any man seem to be contentious if any man hath a mind to quarrel out of a love to show his wit in discoursing what may be said on the other side, ...
If any man seem to be contentious if any man hath a mind to quarrel out of a love to show his wit in discoursing what may be said on the other side, or out of a desire to hold up a party, and contradict us.
We have no such custom of women’ s praying or prophesying with their heads uncovered, or men’ s praying or prophesying with their heads covered; or we have no such custom of contending for these little frivolous things;
neither any of the churches of God and good Christians, in their practices, ought, in things of this nature, to have an eye and regard to the custom of their own church, and also of other Christian churches. Thus the apostle closeth this discourse, and proceedeth in the next verses to tax other abuses which were crept into this famous church.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Poole: 1Co 11:17 - -- Now in this that I declare unto you I praise you not I come now to another thing of greater consequence, as to which I must much blame you; I am so f...
Now in this that I declare unto you I praise you not I come now to another thing of greater consequence, as to which I must much blame you; I am so far from being able to commend or approve of what you do, that I must for it smartly reflect upon you.
That ye come together not for the better, but for the worse that when you meet in your church assemblies, for the performance of your religious duties, to pray, preach, hear, or receive the holy sacrament, you so meet and behave yourselves, as your meeting tends to the increase of your sin, rather than to the increase of your grace, and the promoting the work of God in yourselves and the souls of others.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Poole: 1Co 11:18 - -- In the church here, must signify the religious assembly; for at this time there were no temples built for Christians, but they met in private houses,...
In the church here, must signify the religious assembly; for at this time there were no temples built for Christians, but they met in private houses, as the iniquity of those times would bear: yet others think the place is here meant where the church was wont to meet, and say, that the Christians had a certain stated place, though in a private house, where they used to meet. But it is not very probable that they should, in the midst of heathens, be so quiet and secure as to meet either constantly, or ordinarily, in any one certain and stated place, so denominated. What schisms, or divisions, the apostle meaneth, he expoundeth in the following verses; either they quarrelled about meats, or drinks, or their order in sitting down, or the time when they should begin, or did not stay till they were all met.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Poole: 1Co 11:19 - -- There must be it is not simply and absolutely necessary that there should be such divisions amongst you, (they are caused from the free acts of men...
There must be it is not simply and absolutely necessary that there should be such divisions amongst you, (they are caused from the free acts of men’ s corrupt wills), but yet these things do not fall out by chance, but through the providence of God, who hath so immutably ordered and decreed, to suffer Satan to show his malice, and men to discover the lusts and corruptions of their own hearts.
Heresies: though heresy be a term that, by ecclesiastical usage, is restrained to signify perverse opinions in matter of doctrine, as to which men are stubborn and tenacious; yet it is manifest, that the word is not natively so to be restrained, neither can it reasonably be here so interpreted, but signifies the same thing with schisms and divisions before mentioned: for though (as will appear from 1Co 15:1-58 ) there were corrupt opinions amongst them in matters of doctrine, yet it is unreasonable to understand the apostle here, as speaking with reference to them, these words being brought as a reason why he was inclined to believe that there were such schisms or divisions amongst them, because there must be heresies.
That they which are approved may be made manifest among you: God hath his wise end in suffering breaches and divisions, that such as are true and sincere Christians, opposing themselves to such violations of charity, might appear to you to be true and sincere, and to have the love of God dwelling, working, and prevailing in them.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Poole: 1Co 11:20 - -- The Greek words do not necessarily signify into one place, they may as well be translated, for the same thing, and possibly that were the better ...
The Greek words do not necessarily signify into one place, they may as well be translated, for the same thing, and possibly that were the better translation of them in this place; divisions appearing the worse amongst persons that met as one and the same body, and for one and the same grave action, and that such an action as declared them one body, and laid upon them the highest obligation to brotherly love imaginable.
This is not to eat the Lord’ s supper: some words must be here supplied to complete the sense.
This is not to eat; that is, as you do it is indeed not to do it; to eat the Lord’ s supper in an unlawful manner, is not to eat it. It is called the Lord’ s supper, either because he ordained and instituted it, or because it was instituted for the remembrance of his death, 1Co 11:26 Luk 22:19 . Some think that the sacrament of the Lord’ s supper is here meant, and so one would think, by comparing what is here with 1Co 11:23,24 . Others say, that the love feast is here intended, which ordinarily preceded the Lord’ s supper; the reason they give is, because the abuses here mentioned, viz. not staying one for another till the whole church were met, one eating plentifully, another sparingly, some being hungry while others had ate and drank enough, could not be at the Lord’ s supper, where the minister beginneth not till the whole church be assembled, and where there is no such liberal eating and drinking. To this purpose we are told, that by an ancient custom in Greece (within which Corinth was) the rich men offered some things to their idols, (which after that action the poor had for their relief), and made feasts in the idol’ s temples, of which all had a liberty to eat. That the Christians imitated this practice of theirs, and the rich amongst them upon the Lord’ s days made feasts, at which both poor and rich Christians might be, and the poor carried away what was left. But this church growing corrupt every way, and having got teachers to their humours, they at these feasts neglected the poor, inviting only the rich to them, and also exceeding in their provision for their rich guests. These feasts were called feasts of love, or love feasts, either because:
1. Love to God was that which (pretendedly at least) caused them.
2. Or because they were representations of our Lord’ s last supper, in which he first ate the paschal lamb, then instituted what we call the Lord’ s supper; or because they immediately preceded or followed the administration of the Lord’ s supper, from whence the love feast, being immediately before or after it, had also the same name. But if we allow this, we must make the love feasts also Christ’ s institution, and instituted in remembrance of him, neither of which can be proved. The meaning must be: You cannot rightly communicate at the Lord’ s table, when immediately before or after that table, at your love feast, you are guilty of such disorderly actions. In the mean time, only what Christ instituted for remembrance of his death is what the apostle calls the Lord’ s supper.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Poole: 1Co 11:21 - -- There was at this time in most of the Christian church a Jewish party, viz. such as were converted from Judaism to Christianity, and had a tang of t...
There was at this time in most of the Christian church a Jewish party, viz. such as were converted from Judaism to Christianity, and had a tang of the old cask, being too tenacious of some Jewish rites. These looked upon the Lord’ s supper as an appurtenance to the passover, immediately after which we know that Christ at first instituted his supper. As therefore Christ did eat the paschal supper before the Lord’ s supper; so they, in imitation of him, though they forbore the paschal lamb, yet would have a supper of their own to precede the Lord’ s supper, and having provided it at home, would bring it to the place where the church was to meet; and their poor brethren contributing nothing to the charge of that supper, they would not stay for them, but took this their own supper: so it came to pass, that the poorer Christians were hungry, had none or very little share in their feast, while others, the richer part of the church, had too much; for I take our translation of this word,
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Poole: 1Co 11:22 - -- What? have ye not houses to eat and to drink in? Hence evidently appears, that these love feasts were kept in the place where the assembly met for th...
What? have ye not houses to eat and to drink in? Hence evidently appears, that these love feasts were kept in the place where the assembly met for the public worship of God; for the apostle would have them (if they would continue them) kept in their private houses: and he doth not only blame the abuses of these feasts, but the feasts themselves as kept in the place where the church met, or as having in them any pretence to any thing of religion: meet they might, friendly to eat and to drink, but their private houses were the fittest places for that.
Or despise ye the church of God? Or do you despise the place (as some think) where the church of God meeteth, or the people met in that place, by carrying yourselves so disorderly in such a grave assembly; or the poorer part of the church, who, though poorer, are a part of the church, redeemed by the blood of Christ? The next words would incline us to think that the sense; for it followeth,
and shame them that have not that is, that have not estates to contribute to such feasts, and so are forced to go away without any due refreshment.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Poole: 1Co 11:23 - -- About these love feasts preceding the Lord’ s supper, I have received nothing from the Lord, you have taken the practice up from the Jews or he...
About these love feasts preceding the Lord’ s supper, I have received nothing from the Lord, you have taken the practice up from the Jews or heathens: I do not know that it is unlawful for you civilly to feast, and eat and drink in your private houses; but to come to make such feasts immediately before you religiously eat and drink at the Lord’ s table, I have received no order from the Lord for any such practice. I have told you what I received from the Lord, which is no more than:
That the Lord Jesus the same night in which he was betrayed took bread: see this in the evangelists, Mat 26:26 Mar 14:22 Luk 22:19 ; where all these words are opened. Some think that Paul received this from the Lord by immediate revelation (as it is thought Moses received the history we have in Genesis and part of Exodus, which relates to a time before he was born, or arrived at man’ s estate). Others think that he received it from St. Luke’ s writings (for the words are quoted according to his Gospel). Others think he received it from some other of the apostles. Certain it is, that he did receive it from the Lord; how, is uncertain.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Poole: 1Co 11:24-25 - -- Ver. 24,25. These words we also met with, Luk 22:19,20 , and in the other evangelists’ narration of the institution of the supper. See Poole o...
Ver. 24,25. These words we also met with, Luk 22:19,20 , and in the other evangelists’ narration of the institution of the supper. See Poole on "Luk 22:19" . See Poole on "Luk 22:20" .
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Poole: 1Co 11:26 - -- From hence it appears, that the bread and wine is not (as papists say) transubstantiated, or turned into the very substance of the flesh and blood o...
From hence it appears, that the bread and wine is not (as papists say) transubstantiated, or turned into the very substance of the flesh and blood of Christ, when the communicants eat it and drink it. It is still the same bread and cup it was. The end of the institution is but to commemorate Christ’ s death; and upon that account the waiting upon God in this ordinance, will be a standing duty incumbent upon Christians, until Christ shall come to judgment. Some think, show ye, is a better translation of the verb, than (as we translate it)
ye do show wherefore so behave yourselves at this ordinance, as those who know what they have to do in it, that is, to show forth the death of the Lord Jesus Christ.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Poole: 1Co 11:27 - -- Divines agree, that the unworthiness here spoken of, respecteth not the person of the receiver so much as the manner of the receiving; in which sens...
Divines agree, that the unworthiness here spoken of, respecteth not the person of the receiver so much as the manner of the receiving; in which sense, a person that is worthy may receive this ordinance
unworthily: it is variously expounded, without due religion and reverence, without faith and love, without proposing a right end in the action, under the guilt of any known sin not repented of, &c.
Shall be guilty of the body and blood of the Lord shall incur the guilt of the profanation of this sacred institution; for an abuse offered to a sign, reacheth to that of which it is a sign; as the abuse of a king’ s seal, or picture, is justly accounted an abuse of the king himself, whose seal and picture it is. Some carry it higher; he shall be punished, as if he had crucified Christ, the profanation of Christ’ s ordinance reflecting upon Christ himself.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Poole: 1Co 11:28 - -- He is to examine himself about his knowledge, whether he rightly understands what Christ is, what the nature of the sacrament is, what he doth in th...
He is to examine himself about his knowledge, whether he rightly understands what Christ is, what the nature of the sacrament is, what he doth in that sacred action; about his faith, love, repentance, new obedience, whether he be such a one as God hath prepared that holy table for; it is the children’ s bread, and not for dogs; a table Christ hath spread for his friends, not for his enemies.
And so let him eat, &c. having so examined himself, not otherwise. Whence it appears, that neither children in age or understanding, nor persons not in the use of their reason, nor unbelievers, nor persons under the guilt of sins not repented of, have any right to the Lord’ s supper: accordingly was the practice of all the primitive churches, and all rightly reformed churches. Whether they ought, if they will presume to come, to be kept away by the officers of the church, and how, and by whom? Whether good Christians may communicate with such at the holy table? And after what previous duty performed? Are questions that belong not to this text.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Poole: 1Co 11:29 - -- He that eateth and drinketh unworthily in the sense before mentioned, either having no remote right or no present right to partake in that ordinance,...
He that eateth and drinketh unworthily in the sense before mentioned, either having no remote right or no present right to partake in that ordinance, being an unbeliever, or a resolved unholy or ignorant person; or irreverently and irreligiously. He
eateth and drinketh
to himself not to him that is at the same table with him, unless he hath been guilty of some neglect of his duty to him.
Not discerning the Lord’ s body and his guilt lieth here, that he doth not discern and distinguish between ordinary and common bread, and that bread which is the representation of the Lord’ s body, but useth the one as carelessly, and with as little preparation and regard to what he doth, as he uses the other.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Poole: 1Co 11:30 - -- You, it may be, are not aware of it, but look upon other causes why so many amongst you are sick, and weak, and die immaturely; but I, as the apostl...
You, it may be, are not aware of it, but look upon other causes why so many amongst you are sick, and weak, and die immaturely; but I, as the apostle of Jesus Christ, (and so know the mind and will of God), assure you, that this your irreverent and irreligious profanation of this holy ordinance, is one great cause of so many among you being sick, and weak, and dying in unripe age. Some think that the word
sleep argues that they were godly, penitent Christians that so died, (for the death of wicked men is hardly called sleeping any where in holy writ), to let us know, that even good people, who yet may be saved, may bring judgments in this life upon themselves, as by the profanation of God’ s name in other ordinances, so more especially by their profanation of it in this ordinance of the supper.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Poole: 1Co 11:31 - -- This word judge in Scripture signifies all parts of judgment, examining, accusing, condemning, &c.: here it signifies accusing ourselves, condemnin...
This word judge in Scripture signifies all parts of judgment, examining, accusing, condemning, &c.: here it signifies accusing ourselves, condemning ourselves; discriminating ourselves, by the renewings of faith and repentance, from unbelievers, impenitent and profane persons: if we would thus judge ourselves, God would not accuse or condemn us.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Poole: 1Co 11:32 - -- Lest they be terrified at what he had said, and look upon their afflictions as indications of God’ s displeasure against them to that degree, t...
Lest they be terrified at what he had said, and look upon their afflictions as indications of God’ s displeasure against them to that degree, that he would not look any more upon them as his children; he tells them, that when God’ s people are afflicted with the evils of this life, sickness, &c., God doth not deal with them so much as a Judge, as a Father, who chasteneth the child whom he loveth, and scourgeth whom he receiveth, Heb 12:6-8 ; and doth it for a good end, to prevent the eternal condemnation of the soul with the impenitent sinners of the world, giving us our hell in this life, that we may escape it in the life to come.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Poole: 1Co 11:33 - -- The apostle concludes this discourse with an exhortation to them, for the time to come to take heed of these irreligious and irreverent behaviours, ...
The apostle concludes this discourse with an exhortation to them, for the time to come to take heed of these irreligious and irreverent behaviours, with relation to the Lord’ s supper; that they should not take the sacrament before the whole church were met together, the rich should stay for the poor, and not receive it in parties, but as one body eat that one bread.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Poole: 1Co 11:34 - -- And if any one hungered, they should not make the place where they met together for the solemn worship of God, a place for eating and drinking at fe...
And if any one hungered, they should not make the place where they met together for the solemn worship of God, a place for eating and drinking at feasts, but eat at home; lest, by these disorderly and irreverent actions, they incurred the displeasure of God, and brought down the judgment of God upon themselves. Lastly, he minds them, that if there were any other things of this nature, which he had not spoken to, he did design suddenly to come to them, and then he would set them in order, by giving them rules about them.
PBC: 1Co 11:24 - -- see PBtop: Communion
In this instance, we have a rather extensive teaching from the apostle Paul, concerned about misunderstandings and errors on the...
see PBtop: Communion
In this instance, we have a rather extensive teaching from the apostle Paul, concerned about misunderstandings and errors on the part of the Corinthian church, concerned to establish a clear pattern of how the communion service should be observed. I suggest for your consideration that if we get the spirit of the communion service correct in our minds, we will have set the tone for all other acts of worship we should practice.
311
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
PBC: 1Co 11:31 - -- Observe that divine judgment is provoked when we fail to examine ourselves. We eat the bread and drink the cup unworthily when we fail to examine ours...
Observe that divine judgment is provoked when we fail to examine ourselves. We eat the bread and drink the cup unworthily when we fail to examine ourselves. Self-examination primarily involves a silent but conscious and cognitive recognition of the solemnity of the occasion and the reality that the symbols portray. The nature of the occasion excludes the false notion that personal merit entitles one to participate. Likewise, a personal sense of one’s sinfulness does not disqualify from participation-else, precious saints with honest hearts purified by faith would be compelled to withdraw from the service for conscience sake.
45
Haydock: 1Co 11:10 - -- A power: That is, a veil or covering, as a sign that she is under the power of her husband: and this, the apostle adds, because of the angels, w...
A power: That is, a veil or covering, as a sign that she is under the power of her husband: and this, the apostle adds, because of the angels, who are present in the assemblies of the faithful. (Challoner)
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Haydock: 1Co 11:16 - -- In this chapter are three instructions: 1. That women must have a veil on their heads at public prayers, to ver. 17. ---
2ndly, he corrects the abuse...
In this chapter are three instructions: 1. That women must have a veil on their heads at public prayers, to ver. 17. ---
2ndly, he corrects the abuses in their banquets of charity, called Agape, to ver. 23. ---
3rdly, he teaches that in the sacrament of the holy Eucharist, is the body and blood of Christ. (Witham)
If any man seem to be contentious about this matter, or any other, we have no such custom, nor hath the Church; that is, says St. John Chrysostom, to have such quarrels and divisions. Or, as others understand it, we have no such custom for women to be in the Church uncovered. (Witham)
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Haydock: 1Co 11:17 - -- Now this I ordain, &c. St. Paul found that several abuses had crept in among the Corinthians at their Church meetings, where before the holy mysteri...
Now this I ordain, &c. St. Paul found that several abuses had crept in among the Corinthians at their Church meetings, where before the holy mysteries (though St. John Chrysostom thinks after them) they used to have those charitable suppers, called the Agape. For as our Saviour eat first a common supper with his apostles, before he instituted the holy sacrament, so the Christians in may places brought meats with them, and eat a supper together, in token of that friendship and union, which they had with all their brethren, before they began to celebrate the holy mysteries. It is this supper, which according to the common interpretation St. Paul here (ver. 20.) calls the Lord's supper, [3] (though St. Augustine and some others by the Lord's supper, understand the holy sacrament itself of Christ's body and blood.) The apostle tells them, he hears there are divisions among them at their meetings, which he says will happen, as there must be also heresies, which God permits, that they who are approved, may be made manifest, that is, that on such occasions, the just may shew their fidelity and constancy in their duty to God. The apostle tells them, that it is not now to eat the Lord's supper, that is, there were such abuses among them, that it was not now to imitate the supper, which Christ made with his apostles, or, according to the exposition of St. Augustine, this was not becoming persons, who, before the end of their meetings, were to partake of the divine mysteries. (Witham)
===============================
[BIBLIOGRAPHY]
Jam non est dominicam cænam manducare, Greek: kuriakon deipnon. This expression is used no where else in the New Testament, and it is much more probable, that by it St. Paul signifies those charitable [Agape] suppers, which the Christians had together, in imitation of Christ's supper with his disciples before he instituted the holy mysteries, which was after supper, as St. Paul here says, ver. 25. and St. Luke xxii. The sacrament of the Lord's body and blood has been called the Eucharist, even from the first ages of the Christians religion, as appears by the epistles of St. Ignatius, by St. Irenæus, Tertullian, &c. The late pretended reformers found it called by this name in the Catholic Church. Why then should they, who pretend to nothing but Scripture, affect to give it no name but the Lord's supper, when these words in the Scripture signify a different supper?
====================
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Haydock: 1Co 11:19 - -- There must be also heresies: By reason of the pride and perversity of man's heart; not by God's will or appointment; who nevertheless draws good out...
There must be also heresies: By reason of the pride and perversity of man's heart; not by God's will or appointment; who nevertheless draws good out of this evil, manifesting, by that occasion, who are the good and firm Christians, and making their faith more remarkable. (Challoner) ---
Not that God hath directly so appointed, as necessary: this originates in man's malice, and his sole pride, and great abuse of free-will. The providence of God draweth good out of evil, but wo to the man, says the Scripture, by whom scandal cometh, such as sects and heresies. Hence St. Augustine, chap. viii. de vera relig. says: "Let us use heretics not so as to approve their errors, but to make us more wary and vigilant, and more strenuous in defending Catholic doctrine against their deceits."
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Haydock: 1Co 11:20 - -- The Lord's supper. So the apostle here calls the charity [Agape] feasts observed by the primitive Christians; and reprehends the abuses of the Cor...
The Lord's supper. So the apostle here calls the charity [Agape] feasts observed by the primitive Christians; and reprehends the abuses of the Corinthians on these occasions: which were the more criminal, because these feasts were accompanied with the celebrating the eucharistic sacrifice and sacrament. (Challoner)
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Haydock: 1Co 11:21 - -- Every one taketh before his own supper to eat. The sense seems to be, that he took and brought with him, what he designed to eat with others, and gi...
Every one taketh before his own supper to eat. The sense seems to be, that he took and brought with him, what he designed to eat with others, and give at that supper: but as soon as some were met (without staying for others, as he orders them, ver. 33. when he again speaks of these suppers) the rich placing themselves together, began this supper, and did not take with them their poor brethren, who had brought nothing, or had nothing to bring; by this means, one indeed is hungry, and another is drunk, that is, had at least drunk plentifully, while the poor had nothing but shame, and confusion. By this means of eating and drinking without temperance and moderation, they were by no means disposed to receive afterwards the holy Eucharist. He tells such persons that committed these disorders, that if they be so hungry that they cannot fast, they should eat (ver. 34.) before they come from home. We find these Agape forbidden to be made in the Churches, in the 28th canon of the council of Laodicea, a little before the general council of Nice. In St. John Chrysostom's time, and from the first ages, every one received the sacrament of the holy eucharist fasting, as it is probable this was one of the things which St. Paul gave orders about, (ver. 34.) when he came to Corinth. We must not imagine, that because Christ instituted the holy sacrament, and gave it to his apostles after he had supped with them, that the apostles, or the pastors of the Church, their successors, could not order it to be received fasting, and kneeling, for greater reverence and devotion. See St. Augustine on this same subject, in his letter to Januarius, liv. tom. 2. part 2. p. 126. Nov. edit. He says, that though it is evident that apostles did not receive the body and blood of Christ fasting, yet we must not on that account calumniate, or blame the universal Church, in which it is received only by those who are fasting. He says, it is most insolent madness to dispute against what is a custom in the universal Church. (Witham)
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Haydock: 1Co 11:23 - -- I have received from the Lord. That is, by revelation from Christ, as well as from others, who were present with him, that which also I delivered t...
I have received from the Lord. That is, by revelation from Christ, as well as from others, who were present with him, that which also I delivered to you by word of mouth, &c. Here he speaks of the holy sacrament itself, of the words of consecration, as the evangelists had done, and of the real presence of Christ's body and blood. ---
Which shall be delivered for you. In the common Greek copies, which is broken for you, to wit, on the cross. ---
You shall shew the death of the Lord. As often as you receive, it shall be with a devout and grateful remembrance of his sufferings and death for your sake. He puts every one in mind, that whosoever shall eat this bread, (ver. 27.) so called from the outward appearances, or drink the chalice of the Lord unworthily, shall, by such a sacrilege, be guilty of the body and of the blood of the Lord. And (ver. 29.) that he eateth, and drinketh judgment, or condemnation to himself, not discerning the difference betwixt celestial food and other meats, and not considering it to be truly the body of the Lord. See St. John Chrysostom, hom. xxvii. If the words of our Saviour, this is my body, &c. were to be understood in a metaphorical and figurative sense only, is it probable that St. Paul, writing twenty-four years afterwards, to the new converted Gentiles at Corinth, would have used words, which full as clearly express a true and real presence of Christ's body in the eucharist, without one word to signify that this was to be understood in a figurative sense only? (Witham)
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Haydock: 1Co 11:24 - -- Juvenius, a native of Spain, and a priest, who flourished under Constantine the Great, about the year 329, has left us the life of Christ in hexameter...
Juvenius, a native of Spain, and a priest, who flourished under Constantine the Great, about the year 329, has left us the life of Christ in hexameter verse, where speaking of the institution of the eucharist, he says, "Christ taught his disciples, that he delivered to them his own body;" and when he gave them the chalice, "he taught them that he had distributed to them his blood: and said, this blood remits the sins of the people: drink this, it is mine." (Bibl. Max. P. P. T. iv. p. 74) Discipulos docuit proprium se tradere corpus,
Edocuitque suum se divisisse cruorem.
Atque ait: Hic sanguis populi delicta remittit:
Hunc potate meum.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Haydock: 1Co 11:27 - -- Or drink. Here erroneous translators corrupted the text, by putting and drink (contrary to the original, Greek: e pine ) instead of or drink. ...
Or drink. Here erroneous translators corrupted the text, by putting and drink (contrary to the original, Greek: e pine ) instead of or drink. ---
Guilty of the body, &c. not discerning the body, &c. This demonstrates the real presence of the body and blood of Christ, even to the unworthy communicant; who otherwise could not be guilty of the body and blood of Christ, or justly condemned for not discerning the Lord's body. (Challoner) ---
The real presence in the sacrament is also proved by the enormity of the crime, in its profanation. See St. John Chrysostom, hom. de non contem. ec. and hom. lx. and lxi. ad pop. Antioch. where he shews that the unworthy receiver imitates the Jews in crucifying Jesus, and trampling under foot his sacred blood. Hence the dreadful punishments we read of in verse 27 and 30.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Haydock: 1Co 11:28 - -- Drink the chalice. This is not said by way of command, but by way of allowance, viz. where and when it is agreeable to the practice and discipline o...
Drink the chalice. This is not said by way of command, but by way of allowance, viz. where and when it is agreeable to the practice and discipline of the Church. (Challoner)
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Haydock: 1Co 11:30-32 - -- Therefore in punishment of the sin of receiving unworthily, many are infirm, visited with infirmities, even that bring death, which is meant by tho...
Therefore in punishment of the sin of receiving unworthily, many are infirm, visited with infirmities, even that bring death, which is meant by those words, many sleep. But it is a mercy of God, when he only punishes by sickness, or a corporal death, and does not permit us to perish for ever, or be condemned with this wicked world. To avoid this, let a man prove himself, examine the state of his conscience, especially before he receives the holy sacrament, confess his sins, and be absolved by those to whom Christ left the power of forgiving sins in his name, and by his authority. If we judge ourselves in this manner, we shall not be judged, that is, condemned. (Witham)
Gill -> 1Co 11:5; 1Co 11:6; 1Co 11:7; 1Co 11:8; 1Co 11:9; 1Co 11:10; 1Co 11:11; 1Co 11:12; 1Co 11:13; 1Co 11:14; 1Co 11:15; 1Co 11:16; 1Co 11:17; 1Co 11:18; 1Co 11:19; 1Co 11:20; 1Co 11:21; 1Co 11:22; 1Co 11:23; 1Co 11:24; 1Co 11:25; 1Co 11:26; 1Co 11:27; 1Co 11:28; 1Co 11:29; 1Co 11:30; 1Co 11:31; 1Co 11:32; 1Co 11:33; 1Co 11:34
Gill: 1Co 11:5 - -- But every woman that prayeth or prophesieth,.... Not that a woman was allowed to pray publicly in the congregation, and much less to preach or explain...
But every woman that prayeth or prophesieth,.... Not that a woman was allowed to pray publicly in the congregation, and much less to preach or explain the word, for these things were not permitted them: see 1Co 14:34 but it designs any woman that joins in public worship with the minister in prayer, and attends on the hearing of the word preached, or sings the praises of God with the congregation, as we have seen, the word prophesying signifies,
with her head uncovered. It may seem strange from whom the Corinthian women should take up this custom, since the Jewish women were not allowed to go into the streets, or into any open and public place, unveiled u. It was a Jewish law, that they should go out no where bare headed w: yea, it was reckoned scandalous and ignominious to do so. Hence it is said, x
"thou hast separated from the way of the daughters of Israel; for the way or custom of the daughters of Israel is
So that their it should seem that these Corinthians followed the examples of the Heathens: but then, though it might be the custom of some nations for women to go abroad bare headed; yet at their solemnities, where and when they were admitted, for they were not everywhere and always, they used to attend with their heads veiled and covered z. Mr. Mede takes notice indeed of some Heathen priestesses, who used to perform their religious rites and sacrifices with open face, and their hair hanging down, and locks spreading, in imitation of whom these women at Corinth are thought to act. However, whoever behaved in this uncomely manner, whose example soever she followed, the apostle says,
dishonoureth her head; not her husband, who is her head in a figurative sense, and is dishonoured by her not being covered; as if she was not subject to him, or because more beautiful than he, and therefore shows herself; but her natural head, as appears from the reason given:
for that is even all one as if she were shaven; to be without a veil, or some sort of covering on her head, according to the custom of the country, is the same thing as if her head was shaved; and everyone knows how dishonourable and scandalous it is for a woman to have her head shaved; and if this is the same, then it is dishonourable and scandalous to her to be without covering in public worship. And this shows, that the natural head of the man is meant in the preceding verse, since the natural head of the woman is meant in this.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Gill: 1Co 11:6 - -- For if the woman be not covered,.... That is, if her head is not covered with some sort of covering, as is the custom of the place where she lives,
...
For if the woman be not covered,.... That is, if her head is not covered with some sort of covering, as is the custom of the place where she lives,
let her also be shorn; let her hair be cut short; let her wear it as men do theirs; and let her see how she will look, and how she will like that, and how she will be looked upon, and liked by others; everybody will laugh at her, and she will be ashamed of herself:
but if it be a shame for a woman to be shorn or shaven: as it is accounted in all civilized nations: the very Heathens a speak of it as a thing abominable, and of which there should not be one single dreadful example: then let her be covered; with a veil, or any sort of covering in common use.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Gill: 1Co 11:7 - -- For a man indeed ought not to cover his head,.... The Ethiopic version adds, "whilst he prays"; which is a proper interpretation of the words, though ...
For a man indeed ought not to cover his head,.... The Ethiopic version adds, "whilst he prays"; which is a proper interpretation of the words, though a wrong version; for the apostle's meaning is not, that a man should not have his head covered at any time, but whilst he is in public worship, praying, prophesying, or singing of psalms: the reason is,
forasmuch as he is the image and glory of God. The apostle speaks of man here as in his first creation, in his state of innocence before his fall; but now he has sinned and defaced this image, and come short of this glory; which lay partly in his body being made after the exemplar of the body of Christ, the idea of which God had in his eternal mind, and according to which he shaped the body of Adam: and partly in his soul, in that righteousness and holiness, wisdom and knowledge, and all other excellent gifts in which it was formed. So the Jews b say, the understanding is
but the woman is the glory of the man; being made out of him, and for his help and assistance, and to be a crown of honour and glory to him. The apostle speaks the sense, and in the language of the Jews. The words in Isa 44:13. "After the figure of a man, according to the beauty of a man", are by the Targum rendered, "after the likeness of a man, after the glory of a woman"; and the note of a famous c interpreter of theirs upon the last clause is, "this is the woman",
"why does a man go out with his head uncovered, and a woman with her head covered? it is answered, it is like to one that has committed a sin, and he is ashamed of the children of men, therefore she goes
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Gill: 1Co 11:8 - -- For the man is not of the woman,.... In the present state of things, and according to the ordinary course of generation and propagation of mankind, ma...
For the man is not of the woman,.... In the present state of things, and according to the ordinary course of generation and propagation of mankind, man is of the woman, though not without the means of man; he is conceived in her, bore by her, and born of her; but the apostle respects the original formation of man, as he was immediately made by God out of the dust of the earth, before the woman was in being, and so not of her:
but the woman of the man; she was made out of his rib, and took both her name and nature from him; God was the author, and man the matter of her being; her original under God, is owing to him; and therefore as he was first in being, he must be superior to her: this serves to prove all that has been as yet said; as that man is the head of the woman, the woman is the glory of man, what he may glory in as being from him; and therefore there should be this difference in their appearance at public worship.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Gill: 1Co 11:9 - -- Neither was the man created for the woman,.... To be subservient to her; for she was not in being when he was created; and though it is the proper bus...
Neither was the man created for the woman,.... To be subservient to her; for she was not in being when he was created; and though it is the proper business of man to provide for, take care of, and defend the woman, as the weaker vessel, yet these were not the original ends of his creation; he was made for God, for his service and glory:
but the woman for the man; to be an help meet for him, who was already created; to be a companion and associate of his, both in religious worship and in civil life; and for the procreation and education of children.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Gill: 1Co 11:10 - -- For this cause ought the woman to have power on her head,.... The generality of interpreters, by power, understand the veil, or covering on the woman'...
For this cause ought the woman to have power on her head,.... The generality of interpreters, by power, understand the veil, or covering on the woman's head, as a sign of the man's power over her, and her subjection to him; which Dr. Hammond endeavours to confirm, by observing that the Hebrew word
because of the angels; various are the senses given of these words, some taking them in a proper, others in a figurative sense: some in a proper sense of angels, and these either good or bad. Tertullian e understands them of evil angels, and that a woman should cover her head in time of worship, lest they should lust after her; though much rather the reason should be, lest they should irritate and provoke lust in others: but it is better to understand them of good angels, who attend the assemblies of the saints, and observe the air and behaviour of the worshippers; wherefore women should cover their heads with respect to them, and not give offence to those pure spirits, by an indecent appearance: it is agreeable to the notions of the Jews, that angels attend public prayers, and at the expounding of the word; they often speak f of an angel,
"it happened to Rabban Jochanan ben Zaccai, that he was riding upon an ass, and as he was journeying, R. Eleazar ben Arach was leading an ass after him; he said to him, Rabbi, teach me one chapter in the work of Mercavah (Ezekiel's vision); he replied to him, not so have I taught you, nor in the Mercavah a single man, unless he was a wise man by his own industry; he answered him, Rabbi, give me leave to say one thing before thee, which thou hast taught me; immediately Rabban Jochanan ben Zaccai alighted from his ass and "veiled himself", and sat upon a stone under an olive tree; he said to him, Rabbi, why dost thou alight off from the ass? he replied, is it possible that thou shouldst expound in the work of Mercavah, and the Shekinah be with us,
And a little after,
"R. Joshua and R. Jose the priest were walking on the road, they said, yea, let us expound in the work of Mercavah; R. Joshua opened and expounded, and that day was the solstice of Tammuz, and the heavens were thickened with clouds, and there appeared the form of a bow in the cloud, "and the ministering angels gathered together",
Moreover, this veiling of the woman in public worship because of angels, may be an imitation of the good angels, who when they sung the praises of God, and adored and glorified his perfections, covered their faces and their feet with their wings, Isa 6:1. Many understanding these words in a figurative sense, and in this also they are not agreed; some by angels think young men are meant, who, for their gracefulness and comeliness, are compared to angels; others good men in general, that attend religious worship; others ministers of the word, called angels often in the book of the Revelations; which last seems to be most agreeable of any of these senses; and the women were to cover their heads, that they might not offend either of these, or stir up any impure desires in them; see Ecc 5:6 but as these words follow the account given of the creation of the woman from the man, and for his sake; this may have no reference to her conduct in public worship, but to the power she had of using her covering, or taking it off, or putting it on, at the time of her espousals to a man; which was sometimes done by proxy, or messengers, whom the Jews call
"a man may espouse (a wife) by himself,
wherefore because of these angels, or messengers, that came to espouse her to such, she had power over her head to take off her veil, and show herself, if she thought fit; or to keep it on, as expressing her modesty; or just as she pleased, when she by them was espoused to a man, for whose sake she was made; which sense, after Dr. Lightfoot, many learned men have given into, and seems probable.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Gill: 1Co 11:11 - -- Nevertheless, neither is the man without the woman,.... This is said, partly to repress the pride and insolence of man, that he might not be too much ...
Nevertheless, neither is the man without the woman,.... This is said, partly to repress the pride and insolence of man, that he might not be too much elated with himself, and his superiority over the woman, and look with any degree of disdain and contempt upon her, and treat her with indifference and neglect; and partly to comfort the woman, that she might not be dejected with the condition and circumstances in which she was, since the one is not without the other; nor can they be so truly comfortable and happy, as not the man without the woman, who was made for an help meet for him,
so neither the woman without the man in the Lord. The phrase "in the Lord" is added, to show that it is the will of God, and according to his ordination and appointment, that the one should not be without the other; or it may design that lawful conjunction and copulation, of one man and one woman together, according to the will of the Lord, which distinguishes it from all other impure mixtures and copulations. The Arabic version reads it, "in the religion of the Lord"; and the sense is, that the one is not without the other in religious worship, and in the enjoyment of religious privileges; that though the woman may not pray publicly and expound the Scriptures, yet she may join in prayer, and hear the word preached, sing the praises of God, and enjoy all ordinances; for in Christ no distinction of sex is regarded, men and women are all one in him, and equally regenerated, justified, and pardoned, and will be glorified together.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Gill: 1Co 11:12 - -- For as the woman is of the man,.... Originally; so Eve was of Adam, made out of one of his ribs:
even so is the man also by the woman; now man is b...
For as the woman is of the man,.... Originally; so Eve was of Adam, made out of one of his ribs:
even so is the man also by the woman; now man is born of a woman, he is conceived of one, and brought into the world by one. This is the way in which mankind is propagated, the species preserved, continued, and increased; and therefore there is no reason why the woman should be despised, or the man should be lifted up with himself above her, since they are so dependent upon, and so useful to each other:
but all things of God. The Arabic version reads it, "all creatures are of God"; which is true, but not the truth of these words, which are to be restrained to the subject of the discourse; as that both the man and the woman are of God; they are made by him, and after his image and likeness; that the man is the glory of God, and the woman the glory of the man; the authority of the man over the woman, and the subjection of the woman to the man, are of God, and according to his constitution and appointment; as also that the woman should be of the man, and for his sake, and that the man should be by the woman, and neither should be without the other: these are not things of human constitution, but are settled by the wise counsel of God, and therefore to be cheerfully submitted to, as the best order of things.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Gill: 1Co 11:13 - -- Judge in yourselves,.... The apostle having gone through a variety of reasoning and arguments, showing the superiority of the man to the woman, by whi...
Judge in yourselves,.... The apostle having gone through a variety of reasoning and arguments, showing the superiority of the man to the woman, by which he would prove, that the one should be covered, and the other uncovered, returns to his subject again, and appeals to the common sense and understanding of the Corinthians, and makes them themselves judges of the matter; suggesting that the thing was so clear, and he so certain of what he had advanced being right, that he leaves it with them, not doubting but that they would, upon a little reflection within themselves, join with him in this point:
is it comely that a woman pray unto God uncovered? in you judgment you can never think so, however pleasing and gratifying such a sight may be, to the lust of the flesh, and to the lust of the eye; he does not mention prophesying, only instances in praying; but it is to be understood of one, as of another; and his meaning is, that it is an uncomely thing in a woman to appear in public service with her head uncovered, whether it be in joining in the public prayers, or in singing of psalms, or in hearing the word expounded; and though the apostle does not put the case of the man's praying to God, or prophesying in his name with his head covered, yet his sense is the same of that, as of the woman's.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Gill: 1Co 11:14 - -- Doth not even nature itself teach you,.... By nature is either meant, the law and light of nature, reason in man, common sense, or rather custom, whic...
Doth not even nature itself teach you,.... By nature is either meant, the law and light of nature, reason in man, common sense, or rather custom, which is second nature; and which, in this case, must be restrained to the Greeks and Jews; for though among the Grecians the men cut their hair, and did not suffer it to grow long, as also did the Jews, yet there were many nations k who did not, even at that time, observe such a rule or custom; but as the Jews and Greeks were the persons chiefly, if not solely, known to the Corinthians, the apostle signifies, that the usages of these people might direct and inform them in this matter:
that if a man have long hair it is a shame unto him; he looks unmanly and womanish, and exposes himself to ridicule and contempt.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Gill: 1Co 11:15 - -- But if a woman have long hair,.... And wears it, without cutting it, as men do:
it is a glory to her; it is comely and beautiful; it is agreeable t...
But if a woman have long hair,.... And wears it, without cutting it, as men do:
it is a glory to her; it is comely and beautiful; it is agreeable to her sex, she looks like herself; it becomes and adorns her:
for her hair is given her for a covering; not instead of a covering for her head, or any other part of her body, so that she needs no other: we read indeed of the daughter of Nicodemus ben Gorion, that she was obliged to make use of her hair for a covering in such a sense l;
"it happened to R. Jochanan ben Zaccai that he rode upon an ass, and went out of Jerusalem, and his disciples went after him; he saw a young woman gathering barley corns out of the dung of the Arabian cattle; when she saw him,
but this covering was made use of, not of choice, but by force, through her poverty, she having no other; this was not the custom of the nation, nor was the hair given to women for a covering in this sense, nor used by them as such, unless by Eve before the fall; but is rather an indication that they want another covering for their head, it not being so decent that their long hair should be seen. The Jewish women used to esteem it an immodest thing for their hair to be seen, and therefore they took care, as much as possible, to hide it under another covering;
"one woman, whose name was Kimchith, had seven sons, and they all ministered in the high priesthood; the wise men said unto her, what hast thou done, that thou art so worthy? she replied to them, all my days the beams of my house never saw
that is, they were never seen by any person, even within her house.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Gill: 1Co 11:16 - -- But if any man seem to be contentious,.... That is, if anyone will not be satisfied with reasons given, for men's praying and prophesying with their h...
But if any man seem to be contentious,.... That is, if anyone will not be satisfied with reasons given, for men's praying and prophesying with their heads uncovered, and women's praying and prophesying with their heads covered; but will go on to raise objections, and continue carping and cavilling, showing that they contend not for truth, but victory, can they but obtain it any way; for my part, as if the apostle should say, I shall not think it worth my while to continue the dispute any longer; enough has been said to satisfy any wise and good man, anyone that is serious, thoughtful, and modest; and shall only add,
we have no such custom, nor the churches of God; meaning, either that men should appear covered, and women uncovered in public service, and which should have some weight with all those that have any regard to churches and their examples; or that men should be indulged in a captious and contentious spirit; a man that is always contending for contention sake, and is continually cavilling and carping at everything that is said and done in churches, and is always quarrelling with one person or another, or on account of one thing or another, and is constantly giving uneasiness, is not fit to be a church member; nor ought he to be suffered to continue in the communion of the church, to the disturbance of the peace of it. This puts me in mind of a passage in the Talmud n.
"The Rabbans teach, that after the departure of R. Meir, R. Judah said to his disciples, do not let the disciples of R. Meir enter here,
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Gill: 1Co 11:17 - -- Now in this that I declare unto you,.... The Syriac version reads, "this is what I command"; which some refer to what he had been discoursing of, addi...
Now in this that I declare unto you,.... The Syriac version reads, "this is what I command"; which some refer to what he had been discoursing of, adding to his arguments, and the examples of the church, his own orders and command, that men should worship God publicly, uncovered, and women covered; though it seems rather to respect what follows, what the apostle was about to declare unto them; concerning which he says,
I praise you not; as he did in 1Co 11:2 that they were mindful of him, remembered his doctrines, and kept the ordinances in the manner he had delivered them to them: and it should seem by this, that the greater part of them were not to be blamed, though some few were, for their irregular and indecent appearance in public worship, men with a covering on their heads, and women without one; but in what he was about to say, he could not praise them at all:
that you come together; to the house of God, to pray unto him, to sing his praises, to hear his word, and attend his ordinances, particularly the Lord's supper:
not for the better; for edification and instruction, for the quickening and comforting of your souls; that you may grow in grace and knowledge, become more holy, zealous, fruitful, and useful:
but for the worse; to indulge luxury and intemperance, to encourage heresies, schisms, and divisions, and so grow more carnal, scandalous, and useless.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Gill: 1Co 11:18 - -- For first of all, when ye come together in the church,.... The place where the church met together to perform divine service, called "one place". 1Co ...
For first of all, when ye come together in the church,.... The place where the church met together to perform divine service, called "one place". 1Co 11:20 and is distinguished from their own "houses", 1Co 11:22 and the first thing he took notice of as worthy of dispraise and reproof, in their religious assemblies, were their animosities and factions:
I hear that there be divisions among you: schisms and parties, either about their ministers, one being for Paul, another for Apollos, and another for Cephas; or in the celebration of the Lord's supper, and that which went before it, they going into separate bodies, and partook by themselves, and each took his own supper before another, one ate, and another did not. This the apostle had heard from the house of Chloe:
and I partly believe it; meaning, either that this was the practice of a part of the church to do so, though not of them all; or that part of the report that had been made to him was true; though he hoped in that charity which hopeth all things, that it was not quite so bad as was feared or represented, since things are generally heightened and increased by fame; but yet he had it from such good hands, that he could not but believe there was something in it. So the Syriac version renders it,
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Gill: 1Co 11:19 - -- For there must be also heresies among you.... This is a reason why he was ready to believe there might be something of truth in the report he had rece...
For there must be also heresies among you.... This is a reason why he was ready to believe there might be something of truth in the report he had received of the divisions among them; for if there were heresies, false doctrines, and bad principles, among them, such as were subversive of the fundamentals of Christianity, as the denial of the resurrection of the dead, &c. it was no wonder that there were schisms and factions among them, since heresies generally issue in them. These, the apostle says, "must be"; because God has decreed they shall, whose counsel is immutable, and his purpose unalterable; and since this always was the case, that there were false prophets under the former dispensation, it must be expected that false teachers will arise in the churches now, bringing in damnable heresies; and since Satan is always busy to sow the tares of false doctrine; and human nature, being both weak and wicked, is so susceptible thereof, and so easily imposed upon and deceived, it cannot be thought that it should be otherwise; which, by the goodness and wisdom of God, are overruled to a very good purpose:
that they which are approved: who sincerely believe in Christ, are sound in the faith, and have a well grounded experience of it; who have themselves tried things that differ, and approve of them that are excellent, and have been tried by others, and found to be sincere, upright, and faithful, and are approved of God and good men:
may be made manifest among you; by their steadfastness in the faith, their zealous attachment to it, earnest contention for it, and warm and honest vindication of it; and by the departure of those from them who oppose it, and go on the side of error and heresy; by which means it is known who are the sincere followers of the Lamb, in doctrine, discipline, and conversation, and who not.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Gill: 1Co 11:20 - -- When ye come together therefore into one place,.... Though επι το αυτο does not signify so much the unity of the place, as of the persons me...
When ye come together therefore into one place,.... Though
this is not to eat the Lord's supper: their view in coming together was not so much to celebrate the supper of the Lord, as to partake of their own supper, which was either the paschal supper, or something like it; which many of them "judaizing" observed before the Lord's supper, in imitation of Christ, as they pretended, who first ate the passover, and then instituted the supper. Now there being a great deal of good eating and drinking in this ante-supper, many of them came together for no other end but to partake of that, at least this was their chief view, and not the Lord's supper; or when they did meet together on this account, it was in such an irregular and disorderly manner, and they confounded these suppers together, and behaved so ill at them, and ate the Lord's supper so unworthily, that it could not be rightly called eating of it; or when they had eaten their ante-supper in such an indecent way, neither staying for one another, nor keeping within the bounds of temperance and sobriety; at least having indulged their carnal appetites to such a degree, and raised themselves to such a pitch of gaiety and cheerfulness; it was not fit for them to eat the Lord's supper, to go from such a full meal to the table of the Lord. This was called the Lord's supper, because he was the author of it; and he is the subject of it; and for him, the remembrance of him, it is appointed, kept up, and continued. The Syriac version understands it of the Lord's day, and reads it thus, "when therefore ye meet together, not as is fit for", or becomes,
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Gill: 1Co 11:21 - -- For in eating,.... Not at the Lord's table, but at tables spread for them in the place of divine worship, where everyone brought his own food, under a...
For in eating,.... Not at the Lord's table, but at tables spread for them in the place of divine worship, where everyone brought his own food, under a pretence that others, particularly the poor, should eat with him; but instead of that, he sat down and ate it himself, and would not stay till the rest came, to eat together:
but everyone taketh before other his own supper; that is, without tarrying till all came together, in order to eat a friendly meal with each other, to encourage and increase brotherly love, one would sit down and fill himself before another came; so that some went without, whilst others had too much; and thus the designed end was not answered, and the whole was a piece of confusion and disorder:
and one is hungry, and another drunken; he that came late had nothing to eat, and so was hungry; when he that was first either eat and drank to excess, or at least very plentifully, so that he was very cheerful, and more disposed to carnal mirth, than in a serious and solemn manner to partake of the Lord's supper; and who is thought to be the rich man, who brought his own provisions, and ate them himself when he had done; as the poor may be meant by the hungry, who having no food to bring with them, and none being communicated to them by the rich, were in want, and starving; so that here were many abuses justly chargeable on them. Dr. Lightfoot is of opinion, that by him that was "drunken" meant the Jew that ate the paschal supper, of which he ate and drank freely; and by him that was "hungry", the Gentile, who was so not out of poverty and necessity, but because he refused and avoided eating of the ante-supper, as savouring of Judaism; and so here was a schism and division among them.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Gill: 1Co 11:22 - -- What? have ye not houses to eat and drink in?.... This shows that one taking his supper before another, was not in their own houses, before they came ...
What? have ye not houses to eat and drink in?.... This shows that one taking his supper before another, was not in their own houses, before they came to the place of divine worship, but in the house of God; and the apostle suggests, that if they must have their ante-suppers, and were disposed to eat and drink freely, before they partook of the Lord's supper, it was more decent and orderly, and less reflected upon the honour of religion and the ordinances of Christ, to eat and drink in their own houses; in which they were not only more private and retired, but which they had for such purposes; whereas the house of God was not for any such use, nor should they meet together there on such an account; at least, such disorderly, unequal, and intemperate feasts there, were very scandalous and reproachful: and it was contrary to a Jewish canon to eat and drink in the synagogues, which runs thus o,
"in the synagogues they do not use a light behaviour, nor do they eat and drink in them;''
though they sometimes speak of travellers eating and drinking and lodging in the synagogues p, yet they interpret these of places adjoining to them:
or despise ye the church of God; that is, expose it to contempt and scorn; meaning either the community, the people of God gathered together in a Gospel church state; or the place where they met for public worship, which the Ethiopic version calls, "the house of God"; which was rendered very contemptible by such disorderly practices;
and shame them that have not; no houses to eat in, or supper to eat, or any of this world's goods, or money to purchase food for themselves; who must be confounded and put to shame, when, coming in expectation of being fed, the provisions were eaten up by the rich before they came, or, however, were not allowed to partake when they did come; this was such a respecting of persons, as was justly culpable in them by the apostle.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Gill: 1Co 11:23 - -- For I have received of the Lord,.... The apostle observes unto them the rule, use, and end of the Lord's supper; his view in it is, to correct the dis...
For I have received of the Lord,.... The apostle observes unto them the rule, use, and end of the Lord's supper; his view in it is, to correct the disorders among them, and to bring them to a strict regard to the rule which had such a divine authority stamped upon it; and to observe to them, that in that supper all equally ate and drank; and that the end of it was not a paschal commemoration, but a remembrance of Christ, and a declaration of his sufferings and death. The divine authority of the Lord's supper is here expressed; it was not only instituted by him as Lord, having all power and authority in and over his churches, to appoint what ordinances he pleases; but the plan and form of administration of it were received from him by the apostle. This was not a device of his, nor an invention of any man's, nor did he receive the account from men, no not from the apostles; but he had it by revelation from Christ, either when he appeared to him at his first conversion, and made him a minister of the Gospel; or when he was caught up into the third heaven, and heard things unspeakable and unutterable:
that which also I delivered unto you; for whatever he received from Christ, whether a doctrine or an ordinance, he faithfully delivered to the churches, from whom he kept back nothing that was profitable, but declared the whole counsel of God unto them: now this he refers the Corinthians to, as a sure rule to go by, and from which they should never swerve; and whatever stands on divine record as received from Christ, and delivered by his apostles, should be the rule of our faith and practice, and such only;
that the Lord Jesus, the same night in which he was betrayed; or delivered; as he was by the determinate counsel and foreknowledge of God the Father, and as he was by himself, who voluntarily gave himself up into the hands of men, justice and death, for our offences; and so the Arabic version reads it here, "in the night in which he delivered up himself"; as he did in the garden to Judas and his company: it was in the night when he came in search of him with officers, and a band of soldiers, and when he betrayed him and delivered him into their hands; and that same night, a little before, our Lord instituted and celebrated the ordinance of the supper with his disciples. The time is mentioned partly with regard to the passover it followed, which was killed in the evening and ate the same night in commemoration of God's sparing the firstborn of Israel, when at midnight he destroyed all the firstborn of Egypt, and so was a night to be observed in all generations; and because this feast was to be a supper, and therefore it is best to observe it in the evening, or decline of the day. The circumstance of Judas's betraying him is mentioned, not only because it was in the night, and a work of darkness; but being in the same night he instituted the supper, shows the knowledge he had of his death by the means of the betrayer, and his great love to his disciples, his church and people, in appointing such an ordinance in remembrance of him, and his death, when he was just about to leave them:
took bread; from off the table, out of the dish, or from the hands of the master of the house; an emblem of his body, and of his assumption of human nature; of his taking upon him the nature of the seed of Abraham, of that body which his Father prepared for him, in order to its being broken; or that he might in it endure sufferings and death for his people.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Gill: 1Co 11:24 - -- And when he had given thanks,.... So Luk 22:19, but Mat 26:26 and Mar 14:22 say "he blessed"; not the bread, but his Father; for to bless and give tha...
And when he had given thanks,.... So Luk 22:19, but Mat 26:26 and Mar 14:22 say "he blessed"; not the bread, but his Father; for to bless and give thanks is one and the same thing with the Jews; so we often read of their blessing for the fruits of the earth, for wine and bread; concerning which they have these rules r,
"he that blesseth for the wine, before food, frees the wine that is after food; he that blesseth for the dessert before food, frees the dessert after food;
or excuse from a blessing for that again;
"if they sit at eating, everyone blesses for himself; if they lie (upon couches)
our Lord conformed to these rules, he blessed and gave thanks for the bread separately, and he afterwards blessed, or gave thanks for the wine; and as he and his disciples lay at table, he blessed and gave thanks for them all; for this is not to be understood of any consecration of the bread by a certain form of words, changing its nature and property, and converting it into the body of Christ; but either of asking a blessing of his Father upon it, that whilst his disciples were caring of it, their faith might be led to him, the bread of life, and to his broken body, and spiritually feed and live on him, and receive spiritual nourishment from him; or else of giving thanks to his Father for what was signified by it, for the true bread he gave unto his people, meaning himself; and for that great love he showed in the gift and mission of him; and for the great work of redemption, and all the benefits of it he had sent him to procure, and which were just on finishing; and for all the might, strength, and assistance, he gave to him as man and Mediator, in completing the business of salvation for his people; which was the joy set before him, and which filled his heart with pleasure and thankfulness; both these senses may be joined together, and may direct us as to the matter of blessing and giving thanks at the supper; for no form of words is pointed out to us; what were the express words our Lord used we know not:
he brake it; as a symbol of his body being wounded, bruised, and broken, through buffetings, scourgings, platting of a crown of thorns, which was put upon his head, and piercing his hands and feet with nails, and his side with a spear; for which reason the right of breaking the bread in this ordinance ought literally and strictly to be observed: Christ himself took the bread and brake it, denoting his willingness to lay down his life, to suffer and die in the room of his people; and this action of breaking the bread was used in order to be distributed, and that everyone might partake, as all the Israelites did at the passover, and not as these Corinthians at their ante-suppers, when one was full and another hungry; but Christ broke the bread, that everyone might have a part, as every believer may and ought, who may eat of this bread, and drink of the wine, and feed by faith on Christ, and take every blessing procured by him to themselves:
and said, take, eat; that is, to his disciples, to whom he gave the bread, when he had took and given thanks and brake it, bidding them take it; receive it into their hands, as an emblem of their receiving him, and the blessings of his grace in a spiritual sense, by the hand of faith; and eat the bread put into their hands, as a symbol of their eating and living by faith on Christ as crucified, as having loved them, and given himself for them;
this is my body; in opposition to, and distinction from,
broken for you; for though a bone of him was not broken, but inasmuch as his skin and flesh were torn and broken by blows with rods and fists, by whippings and scourgings, by thorns, nails, and spear; and body and soul were torn asunder, or divided from each other by death; and death in Scripture is expressed by
this do in remembrance of me; signifying that it was not a passover commemoration, or a remembrance of the Israelites going out of Egypt; which because done in the night, as that was, and following upon the passover, the judaizing Christians among the Corinthians took it to be in remembrance of that; having imbibed that notion which the Jews then had, and still retain, that their deliverance from Egypt will be remembered in the days of the Messiah t;
"Nyrykzm, "they commemorate" the going out of Egypt in the nights; says R. Eleazer ben Azariah, lo, I am about seventy years of age, and I never was worthy to say, that the going out of Egypt was recited in nights, till Ben Zoma expounded what is said, Deu 16:3 "that thou mayest remember the day when thou camest forth out of the land of Egypt; all the days of thy life; days of thy life", mean days; "all the days of thy life", nights; but the wise men say, "the days of thy life"; mean this world, and "all the days of thy life" include the days of the Messiah:''
now the apostle mentions these words of our Lord, to show that the design of the institution of this ordinance of the supper was not in commemoration of the deliverance of the Jews out of Egypt; but it was in remembrance of himself, of what he did and suffered on the behalf of his people: particularly the eating of the bread was intended to bring to remembrance how the body of Christ was wounded, bruised, and broken for them; how he bore their sins in his own body on the tree, and suffered, and made satisfaction for them; and which was spiritual food for their faith when they reflected on it, and could not fail of bringing to their remembrance the love of Christ in all, when this was the case.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Gill: 1Co 11:25 - -- After the same manner also he took the cup,.... That is, off from the table, or out of the hands of the master of the house, and blessed or gave thank...
After the same manner also he took the cup,.... That is, off from the table, or out of the hands of the master of the house, and blessed or gave thanks, as he did before when he took the bread; see Mat 26:27, "when he had supped"; the Syriac, Arabic, and Ethiopic versions, read, "when they had supped"; which give a true sense, though not a literal translation; for both Christ and his disciples had supped, having both eaten the passover supper, and the bread, the principal part in the Lord's supper, when he took the cup, gave thanks, and gave it to them:
saying, this cup is the New Testament, or covenant,
in my blood; alluding to the old covenant, which was ratified and confirmed by the blood of bulls, and which was called "the blood of the covenant", Exo 24:8 but the new covenant was established with Christ's own blood, of which the wine in the cup was a sign and symbol; for neither the cup, nor the wine in it, can be thought to be the covenant or testament itself, by which is meant the covenant of grace, as administered under the Gospel dispensation; called new, not because newly made, for it was made from everlasting; or lately revealed, for it was made known to our first parents immediately after the fall, and to other saints in succeeding ages, though more clearly exhibited by Christ under the present dispensation; but it is so called in distinction from the old covenant, or former mode of administration of it, under the Mosaic economy; and it is always new, and will be succeeded by no other; and it provides for and promises new things, and which are famous and excellent, and preferable to all others. Now this is said to be "in the blood" of Christ; that is, it is ratified, and all its blessings and promises are confirmed by his blood: hence his blood is called "the blood of the everlasting covenant", Heb 13:20, pardon and righteousness, peace and reconciliation, and entrance into the holiest of all, all come through this blood, and are secured by the same; and to which the faith of the saints is directed in this ordinance, to observe, receive, and enjoy for themselves:
this do ye as oft as ye drink it, in remembrance of me; of his soul's being poured out unto death; of his blood being shed for the remission of sins; and of his great love in giving himself an atoning sacrifice to divine justice, and laying such a foundation for solid peace and joy in the hearts of his people.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Gill: 1Co 11:26 - -- For as often as ye eat this bread, and drink this cup,.... Not any bread, or any cup: but what is ate and drank in an ordinance way, and according to ...
For as often as ye eat this bread, and drink this cup,.... Not any bread, or any cup: but what is ate and drank in an ordinance way, and according to the institution and appointment of Christ, and with a view to the end proposed by him; and though there is no set fixed time for the administration of this ordinance, yet this phrase seems to suggest that it should be often: and very plainly signifies, that the bread and wine, after the blessing or thanksgiving, remain such, and are not converted into the real body and blood of Christ; but are only outward elements representing these to faith;
ye do show the Lord's death till he come; or rather, as it may be rendered in the imperative mood, as an exhortation, direction or command, "show ye the Lord's death till he come"; since everyone that eats and drinks at the Lord's table does not show forth his death, which is the great end to be answered by it; for the design of the institution of it is to declare that Christ died for the sins of his people: to represent him as crucified; to set forth the manner of his sufferings and death, by having his body wounded, bruised, and broken, and his blood shed; to express the blessings and benefits which come by his death, and his people's faith of interest in them; and to show their sense of gratitude, and declare their thankfulness for them; and all this, "till he come"; which shows the continuance of this ordinance, which is to last till Christ's second coming, where the carnal ordinances of the former dispensation were shaken and removed; and also the continuance of Gospel ministers to the end of the world, to administer it, and of churches to whom it is to be administered: this assures of the certainty of Christ's second coming; as it leads back to his coming in the flesh, suffering and dying in our stead, and thereby obtaining redemption for us; it leads forward to expect and believe he will come again, to put us into the full possession of the salvation he is the author of; when there will be no more occasion for this ordinance, nor any other, but all will cease, and God will be all in all. The apostle here refers to a custom used by the Jews in the night of the passover, to show forth the reason of their practice, and that institution to their children; when either u.
"the son asked the father, or if the son had not understanding (enough to ask), then the father taught him, saying, how different is this night from all other nights? for in all other nights we eat leavened and unleavened bread, but in this night only unleavened; in all other nights we eat the rest of herbs, but in this night bitter herbs; in all other nights we eat flesh roasted, broiled, and boiled, in this night only roasted; in all other nights we wash once, in this night twice; and as elsewhere w it is added, in all other nights we eat sitting or lying, in this night all of us lie; and according to the capacity of the child, the father teaches him,''
particularly he was to inform him what these several things showed forth, or declared x; as that
"the passover
and there is a treatise called
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Gill: 1Co 11:27 - -- Wherefore,.... Since this is the plain institution of the Lord's supper, the form and manner of administering of it; and since the bread and wine in i...
Wherefore,.... Since this is the plain institution of the Lord's supper, the form and manner of administering of it; and since the bread and wine in it are representations of the body and blood of Christ, and the design of the whole is to remember Christ, and show forth his death; it follows, that
whosoever shall eat this bread, and drink this cup of the Lord unworthily, shall be guilty of the body and blood of the Lord. The bread and cup are called the bread and cup of the Lord; because ate and drank in remembrance of him, being symbols of his body and of his blood, though not they themselves; these may be eaten and drank "unworthily", when they are eaten and drank by unworthy persons, in an unworthy manner, and to unworthy ends and purposes. The Lord's supper may be taken unworthily, when it is partook of by unworthy persons. This sense is confirmed by the Syriac version, which renders it
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Gill: 1Co 11:28 - -- But let a man examine himself,.... Whether he has a true sense of sin, sorrow and repentance for it; otherwise he will see no need of a Saviour, nor w...
But let a man examine himself,.... Whether he has a true sense of sin, sorrow and repentance for it; otherwise he will see no need of a Saviour, nor will he look to Christ for salvation, or be thankful to him for redemption by him; all which are necessary in a due observance of this ordinance; also, whether he is in the faith, whether he is a partaker of the true grace of faith, which is attended with good works, and shows itself by love to Christ, and to the saints; whereby a man goes out of himself to Christ for spiritual food and strength, peace and comfort, righteousness, life, and salvation; and by which he receives all from Christ, and gives him all the glory: this is absolutely necessary to his right and comfortable partaking of the Lord's supper, since without faith he cannot discern the Lord's body, nor, in a spiritual sense, eat his flesh, and drink his blood, nor attend on the ordinance in a manner acceptable unto God. Let him also examine and try whether he is sound in the doctrine of faith; or let him prove himself to be so, or show that he is one that is approved thereby; to whom the word of faith has come with power, and who has received it in the love of it, and firmly believes it; since an heretic is to be rejected from the communion of the church, and to be debarred the ordinances of it: let him examine himself, whether Christ is in him, whether he is revealed to him, and in him, as God's way of salvation, and the hope of glory; whether he is formed in his soul, his Spirit put, and his grace implanted there; since if Christ is not within, it will be of no avail to partake of the outward symbols of his body and blood. But if a man, upon reflection, under the influence and testimony of the Spirit, can come to a satisfaction in these things, however mean and unworthy he may seem in his own sight, let him come to the table of the Lord, and welcome.
And so let him eat of that bread, and drink of that cup; none should discourage or hinder him; nor should he deprive himself of such a privilege, to which he has an undoubted right. There seems to be an allusion in these words to what the master of the family used at the passover, when he said z,
"everyone that is hungry,
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Gill: 1Co 11:29 - -- For he that eateth and drinketh unworthily,.... As before explained, 1Co 11:27 "eateth and drinketh damnation to himself"; or guilt, or judgment, or c...
For he that eateth and drinketh unworthily,.... As before explained, 1Co 11:27 "eateth and drinketh damnation to himself"; or guilt, or judgment, or condemnation; for by either may the word be rendered; nor is eternal damnation here meant; but with respect to the Lord's own people, who may through unbelief, the weakness of grace, and strength of corruption, behave unworthily at this supper, temporal chastisement, which is distinguished from condemnation with the world, and is inflicted in order to prevent it, 1Co 11:32 and with respect to others it intends temporal punishment, as afflictions and diseases of body, or corporeal death, as it is explained in 1Co 11:30. This they may be said to eat and drink, because their unworthy eating and drinking are the cause and means of it. Just as Adam and Eve might be said to eat condemnation to themselves and posterity, because their eating of the forbidden fruit was the cause of it. So the phrase, "does not eat condemnation", is used in the Persic version of Joh 3:18 for "is not condemned". And let it be observed, that such an one is said to eat and drink this judgment or condemnation to himself, and not another; he is injurious to nobody but himself: this may serve to make the minds of such easy, who are not so entirely satisfied with some persons who sit down with them at the Lord's table, when they consider that it is to their own injury, and not to the hurt of others they eat and drink:
not discerning the Lord's body. This is an instance of their eating and drinking unworthily, and a reason why they eat and drink condemnation to themselves, or contract guilt, or expose themselves either to chastisement or punishment; because they distinguish not the Lord's supper from an ordinary and common meal, but confound them together, as did many of the Corinthians, who also did not distinguish the body of Christ in it from the body of the paschal lamb; or discern not the body of Christ, and distinguish it from the bread, the sign or symbol of it; or discern not the dignity, excellency, and usefulness of Christ's body, as broken and offered for us, in which he bore our sins on the tree, and made satisfaction for them; a commemoration of which is made in this ordinance.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Gill: 1Co 11:30 - -- For this cause many are weak and sickly,.... Because of their unworthy participation of the Lord's supper, many in the Corinthian church were attended...
For this cause many are weak and sickly,.... Because of their unworthy participation of the Lord's supper, many in the Corinthian church were attended with bodily infirmities and diseases; either by way of fatherly chastisement and correction in such who were truly the Lord's people, though they had behaved unworthily; or by way of punishment to such who were not, and had sinned very grossly:
and many sleep; that is, die a corporeal death, which is often in Scripture signified by sleep, and frequently used of the saints, and their death, and may intend and include some of them here; for though the Lord might resent so far their unworthy conduct and behaviour at his table, as to remove them out of this world by death, yet their souls may be saved in the day of the Lord Jesus.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Gill: 1Co 11:31 - -- For if we would judge ourselves,.... Examine, try, and prove ourselves as above directed, before we eat and drink; or condemn ourselves, by confessing...
For if we would judge ourselves,.... Examine, try, and prove ourselves as above directed, before we eat and drink; or condemn ourselves, by confessing, acknowledging, and mourning over sin, and by repentance for it; or separate ourselves from the company of profane sinners, come out from among them, and touch not their unclean things; or join with them in their unfruitful works of darkness:
we should not be judged; by the Lord; he would not inflict these diseases, sicknesses, and death.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Gill: 1Co 11:32 - -- But when we are judged,.... This is said by way of consolation to the saints, that when the hand of the Lord is upon them, and he is afflicting them, ...
But when we are judged,.... This is said by way of consolation to the saints, that when the hand of the Lord is upon them, and he is afflicting them, they should consider these things, not as the effects of his vindictive wrath and justice, as proper punishments for their sins, but as fatherly chastisements for their good:
we are chastened of the Lord; as children by a father, in love and kindness, in order to bring to a sense of sin, repentance for it, and acknowledgment of it, and behave the better for the future:
that we should not be condemned with the world; the world of ungodly men, the men of the world, carnal, worldly, and Christless sinners. There is a world, a multitude of them that will be condemned. So far has Christ been from dying for the redemption and salvation of every individual person in the world, that there is a world of men that will be righteously condemned at the last day. Now the present afflictions and chastisements of the saints are laid upon them, and blessed to them for their spiritual good, that they may not be condemned to the second death, to everlasting fire, to endless damnation, or be punished with everlasting destruction along with them.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Gill: 1Co 11:33 - -- Wherefore, my brethren,.... Though he had said some very awful and awakening things to bring them to themselves, to reclaim them, and rectify disorder...
Wherefore, my brethren,.... Though he had said some very awful and awakening things to bring them to themselves, to reclaim them, and rectify disorders among them; yet he hoped well of them in general, and softens the severe things he had said, by calling them "brethren"; and hereby prepares them to attend to, and receive the more kindly, what he had further to say:
when ye come together to eat; that is, when ye come to the place of public worship at the usual stated time, in order to eat the Lord's supper, tarry one for another; do not begin to celebrate the ordinance until the church is met together in general, or at least till as many are got together as may be expected will come; for a church is not obliged to tarry for every individual person; nor can it be thought that every member can attend, there being various providences which may detain them: the apostle's view is to promote unity, Christian respect, and brotherly love in the ordinance; that they would sit down and join together, according to the rule of Christ, without respect to persons, or going into parties, factious, and divisions.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Gill: 1Co 11:34 - -- And if any man hunger let him eat at home,.... Whereby the apostle shows his dislike of their ante-suppers in the place of public worship, at which th...
And if any man hunger let him eat at home,.... Whereby the apostle shows his dislike of their ante-suppers in the place of public worship, at which they behaved in so indecent a manner, neglecting the poor, and too freely indulging themselves; and therefore if anyone was hungry, and could not wait till the Lord's supper was over, let him eat at home before he come to the place of worship, and satisfy his appetite, that he might with more ease and decency attend the table of the Lord:
that ye come not together unto condemnation or judgment; that is, that you may so behave when ye come together, that you may not bring upon you the judgment of the Lord, either by way of punishment or chastisement; that is to say, bodily diseases or death.
And the rest will I set in order when I come: meaning, not doctrines of faith, but things respecting ecclesiastical order and polity, which were amiss among them.
![](images/cmt_minus_head.gif)
expand allCommentary -- Verse Notes / Footnotes
NET Notes: 1Co 11:10 Paul does not explain this reference to the angels, and its point is not entirely clear. It seems to reflect an awareness that angels are witnesses to...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
NET Notes: 1Co 11:14 Paul does not mean nature in the sense of “the natural world” or “Mother Nature.” It denotes “the way things are” ...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
NET Notes: 1Co 11:15 No word for veil or head covering occurs in vv. 3-14 (see the note on authority in v. 10). That the hair is regarded by Paul as a covering in v. 15 is...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
NET Notes: 1Co 11:30 Grk “are asleep.” The verb κοιμάω (koimaw) literally means “sleep,” but it is often used in the ...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Geneva Bible: 1Co 11:5 ( 4 ) But every woman that prayeth or prophesieth with [her] head uncovered dishonoureth her head: ( 5 ) for that is even all one as if she were shave...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Geneva Bible: 1Co 11:7 ( 6 ) For a man indeed ought not to cover [his] head, forasmuch as he is the image and glory of God: but the woman is the glory of the man.
( 6 ) The...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Geneva Bible: 1Co 11:8 ( 7 ) For the man is not of the woman; but the woman of the man.
( 7 ) He proves the inequality of the woman by the fact that from the man is the sub...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Geneva Bible: 1Co 11:9 ( 8 ) Neither was the man created for the woman; but the woman for the man.
( 8 ) Secondly, by the fact that the woman was made for man, and not the ...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Geneva Bible: 1Co 11:10 ( 9 ) For this cause ought the woman to have ( c ) power on [her] head because of the ( 10 ) angels.
( 9 ) The conclusion: women must be covered, to ...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Geneva Bible: 1Co 11:11 ( 11 ) Nevertheless neither is the man without the woman, neither the woman without the man, ( d ) in the Lord.
( 11 ) A digression which the apostle...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Geneva Bible: 1Co 11:13 ( 12 ) Judge in yourselves: is it comely that a woman pray unto God uncovered?
( 12 ) He urges the argument taken from the common sense of nature.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Geneva Bible: 1Co 11:15 But if a woman have long hair, it is a glory to her: for [her] hair is given her for a ( e ) covering.
( e ) To be a covering for her, and such a cov...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Geneva Bible: 1Co 11:16 ( 13 ) But if any man seem to be contentious, we have no such custom, neither the churches of God.
( 13 ) Against those who are stubbornly contentiou...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Geneva Bible: 1Co 11:17 ( 14 ) Now in this that I declare [unto you] I praise [you] not, that ye come together not for the better, but for the worse.
( 14 ) He passes now to...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Geneva Bible: 1Co 11:18 ( 15 ) For first of all, when ye come together in the church, I hear that there be divisions among you; and I partly believe it.
( 15 ) To celebrate ...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Geneva Bible: 1Co 11:19 ( 16 ) For there must be also heresies among you, that they which are ( f ) approved may be made manifest among you.
( 16 ) Although schisms and here...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Geneva Bible: 1Co 11:20 When ye come together therefore into one place, [this] is ( g ) not to eat the Lord's supper.
( g ) This is a usual metaphor by which the apostle fla...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Geneva Bible: 1Co 11:21 For in eating every one taketh ( h ) before [other] his own supper: and one is hungry, and another is drunken.
( h ) Eats his food and does not wait ...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Geneva Bible: 1Co 11:22 ( 17 ) What? have ye not houses to eat and to drink in? or despise ye the church of God, and shame them that have not? What shall I say to you? shall ...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Geneva Bible: 1Co 11:23 ( 18 ) For I have received of the Lord that which also I delivered unto you, That the Lord Jesus the [same] night in which he was betrayed took bread:...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Geneva Bible: 1Co 11:24 And when he had given thanks, he brake [it], and said, Take, eat: this is my body, which is ( i ) broken for you: this do in remembrance of me.
( i )...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Geneva Bible: 1Co 11:27 ( 19 ) Wherefore whosoever shall eat this bread, and drink [this] cup of the Lord, ( k ) unworthily, shall be guilty of the body and blood of the Lord...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Geneva Bible: 1Co 11:28 ( 20 ) But let ( l ) a man examine himself, and so let him eat of [that] bread, and drink of [that] cup.
( 20 ) The examination of a man's self, is o...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Geneva Bible: 1Co 11:29 For he that eateth and drinketh unworthily, eateth and drinketh damnation to himself, not ( m ) discerning the Lord's body.
( m ) He is said to disce...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Geneva Bible: 1Co 11:30 ( 21 ) For this cause many [are] weak and sickly among you, and many sleep.
( 21 ) The profaning of the body and blood of the Lord in his mysteries i...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Geneva Bible: 1Co 11:31 For if we would ( n ) judge ourselves, we should not be judged.
( n ) Try and examine ourselves, by faith and repentance, separating ourselves from t...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Geneva Bible: 1Co 11:33 ( 22 ) Wherefore, my brethren, when ye come together to eat, tarry one for another.
( 22 ) The supper of the Lord is a common action of the whole chu...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Geneva Bible: 1Co 11:34 ( 23 ) And if any man hunger, let him eat at home; that ye come not together unto condemnation. ( 24 ) And the rest will I set in order when I come.
...
![](images/cmt_minus_head.gif)
expand allCommentary -- Verse Range Notes
TSK Synopsis -> 1Co 11:1-34
TSK Synopsis: 1Co 11:1-34 - --1 He reproves them, because in holy assemblies,4 their men prayed with their heads covered,6 and women with their heads uncovered;17 and because gener...
Maclaren -> 1Co 11:21
Maclaren: 1Co 11:21 - --In Remembrance Of Me'
This do in remembrance of Me.'--1 Cor. 11:21.
THE account of the institution of the Lord's Supper, contained in this context, i...
MHCC: 1Co 11:2-16 - --Here begin particulars respecting the public assemblies, 1 Corinthians 14. In the abundance of spiritual gifts bestowed on the Corinthians, some abuse...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
MHCC: 1Co 11:17-22 - --The apostle rebukes the disorders in their partaking of the Lord's supper. The ordinances of Christ, if they do not make us better, will be apt to mak...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
MHCC: 1Co 11:23-34 - --The apostle describes the sacred ordinance, of which he had the knowledge by revelation from Christ. As to the visible signs, these are the bread and ...
Matthew Henry: 1Co 11:1-16 - -- Paul, having answered the cases put to him, proceeds in this chapter to the redress of grievances. The first verse of the chapter is put, by those w...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Matthew Henry: 1Co 11:17-22 - -- In this passage the apostle sharply rebukes them for much greater disorders than the former, in their partaking of the Lord's supper, which was comm...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Matthew Henry: 1Co 11:23-34 - -- To rectify these gross corruptions and irregularities, the apostle sets the sacred institution here to view. This should be the rule in the reformat...
Barclay: 1Co 11:2-16 - --This is one of these passages which have a purely local and temporary significance; they look at first sight as if they had only an antiquarian inter...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Barclay: 1Co 11:17-22 - --The ancient world was in many ways much more social than ours is. It was the regular custom for groups of people to meet together for meals. There w...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Barclay: 1Co 11:23-34 - --No passage in the whole New Testament is of greater interest than this. For one thing, it gives us our warrant for the most sacred act of worship in...
Constable: 1Co 7:1--16:13 - --III. Questions asked of Paul 7:1--16:12
The remainder of the body of this epistle deals with questions the Corin...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Constable: 1Co 11:2-16 - --C. Propriety in worship 11:2-16
This section and the next (11:17-34) deal with subjects different from m...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Constable: 1Co 11:2-6 - --1. The argument from culture 11:2-6
Paul introduced the first of the two subjects he dealt with in this chapter, the Corinthian women's participation ...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Constable: 1Co 11:7-12 - --2. The argument from creation 11:7-12
Paul proceeded with a second supporting argument to correct the Corinthians' perversion regarding women's head c...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Constable: 1Co 11:13-16 - --3. The argument from propriety 11:13-16
Paul now returned to the main argument (vv. 4-6), but now he appealed to the Corinthians' own judgment and sen...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Constable: 1Co 11:17-34 - --D. The Lord's Supper 11:17-34
Most of the Corinthians had been following Paul's instructions regarding w...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Constable: 1Co 11:17-26 - --1. The abuses 11:17-26
The first abuse reflects a problem on the horizontal level, between belie...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Constable: 1Co 11:17-22 - --Abuse of the poor 11:17-22
This aspect of the problem involved showing disregard for the poorer members of the church.
11:17 The Corinthians' behavior...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Constable: 1Co 11:23-26 - --Abuse of the Lord 11:23-26
There was an even more serious dimension to this problem. The Corinthians were sinning against the Lord as well as one anot...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Constable: 1Co 11:27-34 - --2. The correctives 11:27-34
Paul proceeded to urge the Corinthians to change their observance of...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Constable: 1Co 11:27-32 - --Discerning the body 11:27-32
The Lord's Supper is more than a personal, introspective remembering, Paul went on to explain. It has implications for th...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Constable: 1Co 11:33-34 - --Waiting for one another 11:33-34
Practical application now follows theological explanation.
11:33 Rather than disregarding the members of the congrega...
College -> 1Co 11:1-34
College: 1Co 11:1-34 - --1 CORINTHIANS 11
VI. LITURGICAL ABERRATIONS (11:2-34)
A few comments about the literary structure and themes of this new section of 1 Corinthians ar...
McGarvey -> 1Co 11:5; 1Co 11:6; 1Co 11:7; 1Co 11:8; 1Co 11:9; 1Co 11:10; 1Co 11:11; 1Co 11:12; 1Co 11:13; 1Co 11:14; 1Co 11:15; 1Co 11:16; 1Co 11:17; 1Co 11:18; 1Co 11:19; 1Co 11:20; 1Co 11:21; 1Co 11:22; 1Co 11:23; 1Co 11:24; 1Co 11:25; 1Co 11:26; 1Co 11:27; 1Co 11:28; 1Co 11:29; 1Co 11:30; 1Co 11:31; 1Co 11:32; 1Co 11:33; 1Co 11:34
McGarvey: 1Co 11:5 - --But every woman praying or prophesying with her head unveiled dishonoreth her head [Corinth was made up of Greeks, Romans and Jews, and all these thre...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
McGarvey: 1Co 11:6 - --For if a woman is not veiled, let her also be shorn: but if it is a shame to a woman to be shorn [with shears] or shaven [with a razor], let her be ve...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
McGarvey: 1Co 11:7 - --For a man indeed ought not to have his head veiled, forasmuch as he is the image and glory of God [Man has no created superior (Gen 1:27 ; Psa 8:6), a...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
McGarvey: 1Co 11:9 - --for neither was the man created for the woman; but the woman for the man [Gen 2:18 ; Gen 2:21-22]:
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
McGarvey: 1Co 11:10 - --for this cause ought the woman to have a sign of authority on her head, because of the angels . [The argument here runs thus: The rule which I have gi...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
McGarvey: 1Co 11:11 - --Nevertheless, neither is the woman without the man, nor the man without the woman, in the Lord ["In the Lord" means by divine appointment.]
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
McGarvey: 1Co 11:12 - --For as the woman is of the man, so is the man also by the woman; but all things are of God . [Lest any man should be inflated with pride by the statem...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
McGarvey: 1Co 11:13 - --Judge ye in yourselves [he appealed to their own sense of propriety, as governed by the light of nature]: is it seemly that a woman pray unto God unve...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
McGarvey: 1Co 11:14 - --Doth not even nature itself teach you, that, if a man have long hair, it is a dishonor to him?
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
McGarvey: 1Co 11:15 - -- But if a woman have long hair, it is a glory to her: for her hair is given her for a covering . [Instinct should teach us that the head of a woman is...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
McGarvey: 1Co 11:16 - --But if any man seemeth to be [a mild way of saying, "if any man is"] contentious, we have no such custom, neither the churches of God . [Knowing the a...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
McGarvey: 1Co 11:17 - --But in giving you this charge, I praise you not, that ye come together not for the better but for the worse . [Their church services, which were inten...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
McGarvey: 1Co 11:18 - --For first of all [Paul was not careful as to his divisions, and so his "secondly" is not clearly stated. Olshausen, Ewald, Winer and others think it b...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
McGarvey: 1Co 11:19 - --For there must be [Luk 17:1 ; Mat 18:7 ; Mat 10:11] also factions among you, that they that are approved may be made manifest among you . [A carnal sp...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
McGarvey: 1Co 11:20 - --When therefore ye assemble yourselves together, it is not possible to eat the Lord's supper [The Lord's Supper is a spiritual feast. It is a feast of ...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
McGarvey: 1Co 11:21 - --for in your eating each one taketh before other his own supper; and one is hungry, and another is drunken . [This verse is an indictment with three co...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
McGarvey: 1Co 11:22 - --What, have ye not houses to eat and to drink in? or despise ye the church of God, and put them to shame that have not? What shall I say to you? shall ...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
McGarvey: 1Co 11:23 - --For I received of the Lord [Paul did not receive his knowledge as to the supper from the apostles or other witnesses (comp. Gal 1:11-12). To be truly ...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
McGarvey: 1Co 11:24 - --and when he had given thanks, he brake it, and said, This is my body, which is for you: this do in remembrance of me . [The Greek word for giving than...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
McGarvey: 1Co 11:25 - --In like manner also the cup, after supper [Paul here inserts the entering wedge of reform. The Lord's Supper came after the Passover, and was no part ...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
McGarvey: 1Co 11:26 - --For as often as ye eat this bread, and drink the cup, ye proclaim [inwardly and outwardly] the Lord's death till he come . [Thus the supper looks forw...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
McGarvey: 1Co 11:27 - --Wherefore whosoever shall eat the bread or drink the cup of the Lord in an unworthy manner, shall be guilty of the body and the blood of the Lord . [I...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
McGarvey: 1Co 11:28 - --But let a man prove [test] himself, and so let him eat of the bread, and drink of the cup . [A Christian confronting the communion should first test h...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
McGarvey: 1Co 11:29 - --For he that eateth and drinketh, eateth and drinketh judgment unto himself, if he discern not the body . [The Corinthians were eating the supper in a ...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
McGarvey: 1Co 11:30 - --For this cause many among you are weak and sickly, and not a few sleep . ["Not a few" indicates a larger number than the preceding "many." It is gener...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
McGarvey: 1Co 11:32 - --But when we are judged, we are chastened of the Lord, that we may not be condemned with the world . [If we examined and corrected ourselves, we would ...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
McGarvey: 1Co 11:33 - --Wherefore [if you wish to remedy matters], my brethren, when ye come together to eat, wait one for another .
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
McGarvey: 1Co 11:34 - --If any man is hungry, let him eat at home; that your coming together be not unto judgment . [By waiting they would eat together, and eat of the same s...
Lapide -> 1Co 11:1-34
Lapide: 1Co 11:1-34 - --CHAPTER 11
SYNOPSIS OF THE CHAPTER
The Apostle proceeds to deal with the third point put before him, that of the veiling of women; for the Corinthia...
![](images/cmt_minus_head.gif)
expand allCommentary -- Other
Critics Ask: 1Co 11:5 1 CORINTHIANS 11:5 —Should women wear veils when they pray? PROBLEM: Paul insisted here that “every woman who prays or prophesies with her he...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Critics Ask: 1Co 11:14 1 CORINTHIANS 11:14 —How can nature teach that long hair is wrong for a man when length of hair is culturally relative? PROBLEM: Paul asked, ...
Evidence: 1Co 11:5 If any man’s life at home is unworthy, he should go several miles away before he stands up to preach. When he stands up, he should say nothing. CHAR...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Evidence: 1Co 11:8 It has been well said that woman was made from Adam’s rib—close to his heart, under his protective arm (Genesis 2:21-22).
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)